The Tiny Witch from the Deep Woods Vol 1
Table of Contents
Book 1: A Small House in the Forest
Chapter 2: News of Injury—Leaving the Forest
Chapter 8: What Was Lost, and What Remains
Chapter 10: Judgment and the Future
Chapter 1: The Pickpocket and the Sickly Old
Woman
Chapter 2: The Old Woman’s Checkup and Hints of
Misdeeds
Chapter 3: The Desire to Save Others
Chapter 5: A Small Life, Red and White Memories
Chapter 6: The First Time at the Sea
Chapter 7: An Encounter with the People of the
Forest
Chapter 8: Dance for the Dragon God
Chapter 11: Miranda of the Forest
Chapter 12: Getting to Know Miranda
Chapter 13: Iris’s Disappearance
Chapter 14: Searching for a Clue
Chapter 16: Goodbye, and to the Future
Side Story: The Little Wolf’s Feelings
Book 1: A Small House in the Forest
Chapter 1: Days in the Forest
A shadow dashed through the thick undergrowth
and between the densely crowded trees. It was a girl, no more than twelve or
thirteen, wearing a simple dress, her long hair a glittering blonde trail
behind her as she ran. Her eyes were a vivid green, as if they had taken their
color from the forest itself, and they shone with joy as she ran her solitary
race. She was able to maneuver over the fallen trees and between the patches of
thorns with remarkable dexterity, even with the basket woven from ivy she carried
on her back; anyone who saw her would doubtlessly compare her to some kind of
forest-dwelling fairy.
Eventually, as a small log cabin came into
view, the girl began to slow.
Coming to a stop in front of the house’s door,
she took a moment to catch her breath and fix her skirt, disheveled from all
the running. Then, swinging the basket on her back around into her arms, she
pushed open the door and stepped inside.
“I’m back, mom! I found those herbs you were
talking about this morning! I also got some mushrooms. They were growing in the
usual spot. It looks like we’ll get a lot of them this year.”
As she set the basket on the table, her
shouting brought an older woman in a deep-green dress out from the depths of
the house. The woman sighed, but her exasperation did nothing to mar her
youthful beauty.
“Keep your voice down, Misha. No polite young
lady should be shouting. Oh my, were you running again? Your hair is a mess.”
After looking her daughter up and down with eyes the same forest green, she
gave a wry smile and a shake of her head before fixing the young girl’s hair.
Misha could only laugh with embarrassment at
being found out, surrendering to the pleasant sensation of her mother’s hands
smoothing her hair. Clearly, Misha had to do more than straighten out her
clothing to fool her.
“I also found a cluster of honeyberry growing
off to the east. Now we should be able to make more painkillers!” she reported.
“Wow! That’s great, Misha. Your father was
just saying that he’s running out of painkillers and is worried for his
people,” her mother said, elated.
Misha’s attempt at changing the subject had
worked wonderfully.
“That’s good too, but don’t forget to keep
some for yourself. Otherwise, you’ll be the one in trouble!” Misha reminded
her.
Her mother had injured her leg a long time
ago. It had healed enough for her to walk on it again, but when the weather
changed or she pushed herself too hard, it still hurt terribly. Despite that,
her mother laughed it off every time, saying it was convenient for alerting her
of incoming rain.
“I know, I know. If I can’t walk, that makes
things harder for you, right?”
“That’s not the point!” Misha frowned at her
mother’s smile.
She doesn’t get it at all. I just don’t want her
to be in pain.
Despite her youth, Misha had picked up on the
fact that something untoward was going on outside the forest for the past few
years. Requests for painkillers and salves had been steadily increasing in both
frequency and dosage. That must have meant there were more and more people
getting hurt. Her mother seemed concerned about whatever was happening, as
whenever a messenger came, she sent back all of the medicine the two of them
had.
As a result, she suffered during every
rainfall. Though she never said as much, Misha was sure the pain was keeping
her from sleeping.
I’ll have to keep my own
stockpile separate for mom, she decided secretly,
suppressing a sigh. They might have been apothecaries by trade, but that didn’t
mean they could afford to ignore their own needs. Because if
you’re in pain and can’t concentrate, you start to make mistakes!
She knew her mother was too skilled to let
something like pain mess her up, but it was still a good excuse to convince
herself to hold some medicine back.
There wasn’t an unlimited supply of herbs in
the forest. Though Misha had found a good amount of honeyberry—the base for
their painkillers—today, she knew there wasn’t much left for them to take. If
you pulled up a plant by its roots, it wouldn’t grow back. Maintaining the
natural ecological balance was just as important as making medicine. Even with
her injured leg preventing her from walking around much, Misha’s mother knew
the forest much better than her daughter did. There was no way she hadn’t noticed
the dwindling plant life. That was likely why she was keeping less of the
medicine for herself.
“I hope things go back to normal soon,” Misha
murmured, earning a troubled smile from her mother.
Deep in the forest sat a small log cabin.
Misha and her mother lived there alone. Although sometimes it was lonely to
live in a place with few visitors, it was all Misha had ever known, so she
could easily accept that life for what it was. Her father visited once a month
and always had plenty of gifts for her, so they really wanted for nothing here,
and the forest kept her plenty occupied. Above all, Misha was happy to be able
to live with such a smart, kind mother.
When she was younger, she had once asked why
her father didn’t live with them. She had been reading a picture book left by
her father on his visit a few days prior, and that book had said a family was
supposed to live together.
Her mother apologetically explained that she
had been born to a clan of apothecaries in a country far, far to the north. She
had met Misha’s father when he was traveling across the world as part of his
education. The two had fallen in love, and Misha’s mother had cut her ties with
her family to follow him home.
But after growing up in a quiet forest, she
couldn’t adjust to life in the city. Her longing for the woods all but drained
the life from her. Worried for her well-being, though it broke his heart to do
so, Misha’s father brought her to a forest at the edge of their lands.
He wanted to live together with both of them,
but he was a duke. He had important responsibilities to take care of. And so
that brought them to their current living situation.
“I often think you would have been better off
if we lived in your father’s mansion with him,” her mother said sadly, but
Misha shook her head vigorously.
“I want you to be happy! And dad comes to
visit, so I don’t miss him at all! And I love the forest!”
Hating to see her mother looking so sad, Misha
never brought up the topic again. And besides, living in the forest with her
mother really was fun.
However, ever since that day, her mother had
started teaching Misha how to act as a noble would—“just in case.” Misha had
asked how she knew all this stuff if she was from another country, to which she
had replied that she’d studied hard to make sure she didn’t embarrass Misha’s
father.
“In the end, I thought it was all for nothing,
but now that I can teach you, I’m glad I went to the trouble.”
As much as she hated the stiff manners and
tons of studying, Misha swallowed her complaints when she saw how happy her
progress made her mother. A little hardship was worth her mother’s smile.
Someday, those skills would become
exceptionally useful for her. Of course, she had no idea of that at the time.
After moving to the forest, her mother
recovered immediately, and she found she was familiar with many of the herbs
and plants growing in the area. Once she had the opportunity, she started using
the herbs to make medicine. Misha’s father received them with great joy; her
creations were much more effective than anything his duchy had. And so, her
mother returned to her original work as an apothecary.
And she poured every bit of knowledge she had
into her daughter. Instead of studying at a desk, Misha learned everything
hands-on, her mother turning instruction into a game ever since the girl was
tiny. With nothing else to distract her as she grew, Misha acquired the skills
of an apothecary—from the collecting of raw ingredients to the production of
medicines—by the time she was ten years old.
Now, she spent her days running through the
forest in her injured mother’s place, collecting medicinal herbs and all sorts
of other things from nature.
“By the way, is dad coming to visit us next
month?” Misha asked as she worked the mortar. She hoped she’d sounded as
relaxed as she thought she did.
Her father had visited her once a month
without fail ever since she was little, but he had missed the last two months.
Instead, he’d sent a letter with a messenger, who’d then grabbed a bunch of
medicine and left.
“I don’t know. It sounds like he is still far
away,” her mother replied sadly as she boiled some herbs in a kettle.
Misha had to struggle not to click her tongue
in frustration. Her mother would scold her in an instant if she did, so she
made sure to suppress the urge.
She knew how much her mother loved her father,
and though she never said it, her mother clearly missed him and worried about
him. They did their best to make as much medicine as they could, hoping it
would be at least a little helpful, but they didn’t even know if it reached
him.
The only news they got from the outside was
from their father on his monthly visits, or the irregular mail birds.
“Maybe we should send
a mail bird?” Misha suggested.
Her mother thought for a moment but ultimately
shook her head. “We need to save that for emergencies. I don’t think this
counts.”
Mail birds were the primary means of
communication in this world. These birds were trained to travel specifically
between two places, carrying letters tied to their legs. They were smart,
capable of following simple instructions. Consequently, they were extremely expensive. Even the high-ranking nobility usually
possessed no more than a small handful of their own. On top of there being very
few of the birds in nature, they lived deep in the dangerous wilderness, had
temperamental natures, and warmed up to people slowly. Ideally, you grabbed
them before they hatched, so they could be raised by hand. That made them
exceptionally costly.
Misha’s father was a bit of a worrywart, so
even though they were used to living in the forest alone, he was always
concerned there might be an emergency. Despite the exorbitant cost, he had left
one of those invaluable mail birds for the two of them to use. Or rather, he
had brought a mail bird egg to them just before it hatched. Luckily, Misha’s
mother had a way with animals, so she had managed to raise it herself, but it
had been quite the trial.
Although her father was always worried about
them living deep in the forest, they were quite self-sufficient. Even if they
got sick or injured, they had the skills to take care of themselves, so they
rarely needed to use the mail bird. As a result, the bird, who they had named
Kyne, now flew freely around the forest, vying for a spot at the top of the
food chain.
“Kyne’s super smart. He’ll find dad even if he
isn’t home.”
The first time they had sent Kyne off to
deliver a letter, they had carelessly just told him to go to Misha’s father,
not to the mansion. As a result, though they still didn’t know how he did it,
Kyne had tracked her father down in the middle of traveling around on his
inspections and delivered the letter to him in the field.
Misha’s mother gave a sheepish grin. Normally
mail birds stuck to a fixed route. You would raise it in one spot, then take it
somewhere else and let its instincts for returning home bring it back. You
repeated that process over and over. By getting the bird to associate a word
with the place you set it free from, it would link the two together in its
mind.
Really smart birds could remember two or three
places, but they had only taught Kyne to travel to Misha’s father’s mansion—or
so they had thought. Her father had all but ignored the letter that time,
rushing over to find out what they had done to teach the bird to find him. He
had brought a birdkeeper with him to thoroughly investigate their methods, but
in the end, they could only conclude that Kyne was a particularly smart bird.
“I think it’d be a good idea to have some idea
of what he’s been up to. I’m curious too.” Misha tried a little harder to push
her mother, who responded only with a gloomy shake of her head.
Misha didn’t know what it was like to live in
her father’s mansion. The forest had been her home ever since she was born. She
hadn’t even visited his mansion a single time. She had seen some of the
villages on the edge of the forest, but that was as far as she had traveled.
She knew a lot from being told things, but everything she’d learned about the
country, her father’s lands, and his mansion came from her parents’ stories and
her books.
Clever as she was, Misha was starting to
notice what was unspoken.
Her mother was her father’s concubine. Her
father had been betrothed at a young age, so the position of his official wife
had already been taken. Being a commoner from a foreign nation, she had no
chance of being a duke’s wife. She couldn’t even handle life in the city, after
all.
But considering how adaptable her mother was,
Misha had to wonder whether the situation was more complicated than that. So,
she put her mind to work. She questioned, for example, why her father never
spoke about his family back at the mansion, and why her mother didn’t want her
going to visit.
Not that I mind. I’d probably be really nervous
surrounded by that many people. Living in the forest is fun enough.
Misha had no interest in city life. Trying to
abide by all the manners and customs expected there would be stifling. The
rigid rules of noble life that her mother had taught her were far too
restraining for a girl who’d grown up running free in the woods. She still had
dreams like many young girls—it wasn’t like she had no interest in the fancy
dresses they wore—but she was exhausted just imagining being trapped in one all
day every day, forced to follow a thousand rules. Some
people were just cut out for different lifestyles.
But right now, she felt she needed to poke for
answers every time she saw her mother worrying, longing to see her father, yet
unwilling to make a move on her own. What had happened?
“Anyway, he’s a duke,” Misha said. “He may
lead from the rear, but it’s not like they’ll send him to the front lines,
right? I’m sure he’ll be fine. I’m done grinding these, by the way. Should I
put them in the pot now?”
However, even if she felt that way, she didn’t
want to stress her mother any further, so she changed the subject. Until the
actual problem was solved, it was a routine they’d repeat over and over, but as
she wasn’t personally involved, Misha had inevitably grown a bit numb to it.
“Good work. You’ll get better results if you
let the rest of the pot cool first, so just leave them on the table there for
now.” Misha’s mother’s shoulders immediately relaxed as she took the change in
topic in stride.
Following her mother’s instructions, she left
the now powdered herbs on the table. “If we’re done for now, should we break
for lunch? I want to check how the dried meats are doing. Can I try a little
bit?”
The rabbit they’d snared the day before had
been quite plump. They had caught plenty of food that day, so they’d placed
some leftovers outside to dry in the sun. Misha adored meat that hadn’t
completely dried out yet, that was still somewhat soft. It was one of her
personal favorites.
Seeing how excited she was, her mother nodded
with a laugh. “Just a little, okay? Don’t stuff yourself.”
“’Kay!”
Despite her mother’s word of caution, food was
the only thing on Misha’s mind as she stepped out of the room, completely
missing the sound of her mother’s sigh.
Chapter 2: News of Injury—Leaving the Forest
The news arrived suddenly and unexpectedly. It
first came from a mail bird sent from the mansion. Escorted through the forest
by Kyne, it delivered the letter straight to her mother like always. Would it
be a notice that her father would finally be visiting as planned? Or would it
be another apology that he wouldn’t make it?
Pretending to be uninterested, Misha watched
as her mother opened the letter—until all the blood drained from the older
woman’s face. Her shock made her all but collapse and brought Misha running
over to hold her.
“What’s wrong, mom?!”
Though Misha recognized it was a bit rude to
do so, she peeked at the contents of the letter. It was a curt message: Her
father had returned to the mansion heavily wounded. They were sending someone
to pick her mother up for her to administer treatment.
She was stunned for a moment, but Misha
quickly recovered. She shook her equally lost mother. “Get it together! They’re
sending someone, so that means he’s still alive! We need to get the medicine
ready!”
If they had sent the bird the moment her
father arrived home and set off for the forest at the same time, they’d be at
their doorstep in a few hours. They didn’t have time for their anxiety to
paralyze them.
“R-Right. We have to get to work!”
Coming back to her senses, her mother jumped
to her feet and dashed to the storage room. Meanwhile, Misha hurried to start
her own task. She could leave collecting the medicine to her mother, but who
knew how long she’d have to stay in the mansion? Misha needed to pack a few
changes of clothes and other daily life essentials for her.
Two hours passed in the blink of an eye, and a
violent knocking rang from their front door.
“Yes, one second!” After racing to the door,
Misha opened it to find a familiar knight on the other side. He was a close
associate of her father; Misha had often seen him during visits. However, his
normally pleasant, gentle face was now grim, and his clothes were covered in
dirt and blood. He must have run here immediately after returning from the
battlefield. Though Misha didn’t know this fact, the location of her house was
known to only a small handful of her father’s closest allies.
“Are you ready?!” His expression and his tone
made it clear they didn’t have a second to waste.
Misha’s heart nearly stopped. The letter alone
hadn’t made it feel personal. It hadn’t felt real. But with the knight here,
she couldn’t ignore the reality of the situation, one pressing on her with
every sense of urgency. Her father was on death’s doorstep.
“I am. Do you have a horse for me?” Her mother
emerged from farther inside the house, wearing a gray robe and carrying a large
bag on her back. Though she was still pale, she once again had the calm,
collected expression of a professional apothecary.
“Mom...” Misha eked out in a weak voice, not
sure what to say, not sure whether she should say anything at all.
Her mother hesitated for a moment, biting her
lip as she stared at her daughter. Then she quickly turned back to the knight.
“She’ll be coming with us. It’ll be hard for her to ride on my horse if we’re
traveling at full speed. Can she ride with someone else?”
“What do you mean?!” Misha was almost
hysteric.
“That was our intention from the start. We
have another young knight with us. She can ride with him. Let’s go!”
Now it was Misha’s turn to be stunned. The mansion
felt like a place far, far away she’d never see. She had never considered that
she’d be going there herself.
“You have five minutes to get ready, Misha.
Hurry.”
But the circumstances didn’t give her feelings
time to catch up. In response to her mother’s severe tone, Misha reflexively
bolted off to her room. Grabbing some handfuls of clothes and her own
apothecary’s tools, she threw them into a bag. When she ran back to the front
door, she saw they had all stepped outside.
“This way.”
A short distance away, they came across
another knight rushing to their side. Misha was dubious as to whether he had
made it to twenty years yet.
“Any experience riding?” he asked, wasting no
time with greetings.
“No.”
In the forest, one needed to be on foot to
handle the tight turns everywhere, and it wasn’t really an environment where
they could raise horses anyway.
Though he’d expected as much, the knight
nevertheless seemed a bit discouraged. “Then you’ll sit in front of me. Make
sure you keep your mouth closed. I don’t want you biting your tongue. Excuse
me.” Speaking quickly, the knight leaped onto his horse before reaching for
Misha. Giving him her arms, she let him pull her up into the saddle.
“Ah!” With a pathetic little cry, she found
herself suddenly on the horse.
Wow, we’re so high up!
She had no idea being on a horse would put her
this high off the ground. With nothing but the saddle beneath her and an arm
around her waist to support her, she worried she’d fall right off.
“You can lean against me, but don’t move
around too much,” the knight said calmly from behind her, pulling her close and
tight.
She felt an unfamiliar warmth on her back. She
hadn’t even been this close to her own mother since she had turned ten years
old. Her instinctive reaction was to push away, but the knight held her tight.
“I just said not to
move around so much. You’ll scare the horse. You don’t have to do anything.
Just keep your mouth closed and stay still.”
That’s easy for you to say!
Even if she wasn’t an adult, she was a
reasonably mature, innocent girl. This kind of closeness was difficult for her
to handle. But the rational part of her brain insisted now wasn’t the time to
be worried about things like that, so she settled for wrapping her arms tight
around her bag and biting her lip.
“Let’s go!”
With that signal, the horse began to run.
Ahhhhh! We’re shaking too much! I’m gonna fall!
I’m gonna fall!
As the horse began ruthlessly shaking her
about, Misha began to scream internally. She didn’t need the knight’s warning.
If she opened her mouth, she’d be spitting blood in moments. So, she did
everything in her power to keep her screaming contained.
And so, less than two hours after receiving
the letter, Misha left the home and forest she grew up in, entirely unaware how
different her life would be when she returned...
The mansion itself was incredibly busy. The
witch living in the depths of the forest, the lord’s own concubine, was coming
to visit. Having come back from the battlefield gravely wounded, the lord was
clearly in danger. Some kind of poison had entered the wound, preventing it
from closing. It excreted an unsettlingly colored fluid, and the fever it
caused drained his strength and robbed him of his consciousness.
The Witch of the Forest crafted incredible
medicine. Maybe she would have the necessary knowledge to treat his wounds. For
those who loved the lord, the witch was their last hope.
Of course, his wife, whose love the witch had
all but stolen, was conflicted. There was no doubt that her husband would die
at this rate, but she could hardly beg for help from the witch who had
attracted her husband’s attention.
When she had learned she had been betrothed to
the man she’d admired since she was barely old enough to walk, she’d been over
the moon. Though there hadn’t been much passion to it, the polite and formal
kindness he showed as he escorted her around as her fiancé had been a great
source of pride for her. An object of adoration for all of high society, he was
the younger brother of the crown prince, promised to one day assume the title
of duke. Despite her loneliness when he’d left on his travels to see the world,
their upcoming marriage on his return had made her heart dance for joy. She’d
gone about preparing for the wedding like she was living in the clouds, and
she’d fallen asleep every night clutching the infrequent letters he sent to
her.
She had never expected he’d bring a woman home
with him.
The witch was, of course, beautiful. Her hair
almost shone gold, and her jade eyes reflected a deep mystique. She was also
well-versed in the medicines of some foreign land. Her one failing was that she
was a commoner, completely ignorant of the manners and customs of this country.
To the nobility, a marriage was a contract.
Nothing so naive as “finding true love” would be enough to overturn a
betrothal. The happiness—or lack thereof—of those involved had nothing to do
with it.
She had been too fixated on the future she had
imagined. Even when her fiancé had asked to dissolve their betrothal, even when
her mother had insisted that she would never find happiness married to a man in
love with another woman, she had stubbornly refused to give up on it. Marriage
was a contract. If she stayed at his side, he’d no doubt grow weary of that
country bumpkin soon enough.
Her stubbornness, combined with her father’s
desire to tie their family to royalty, ended up winning the day; she became his
official wife. The woman he brought back was relegated to being his concubine.
Having known her since they were both young,
her husband had a deep affection for her, even if it wasn’t technically love.
He made every effort to treat the two of them fairly. Still, that wasn’t enough
to satisfy his wife.
It wasn’t odd for members of the high nobility
to have multiple wives. The wife was expected to keep the concubines organized
and manage the household. Having been raised as a noble herself, she had always
known that fact. As she’d grown up, she’d both seen her mother experience a
similar situation and watched her own half siblings be born of concubines,
raised alongside her with no discrimination of status between them.
But this was different. Before they had
married, he had wanted a woman for romantic reasons, not political ones; she
herself had only become his wife for the latter. That seeded a deep insecurity
in her.
What if...? she would dream. If it had been after they were married, she’d
understand. If it had been after they had children, she’d understand. Maybe in
those cases, she would have been able to accept the new woman a bit easier.
But that wasn’t what happened. Instead, driven
mad by jealousy, she had begun to torment the concubine behind her husband’s
back, knowing full well the witch had nowhere to run, bearing her suffering in
silence as the harassment only continued to escalate. Scorned for her lack of
knowledge of etiquette and manners, she sought out a teacher and made every
effort to learn. She did everything she could to meet every unreasonable demand
the wife brought on her, losing her chance to escape the wife’s hostility.
And then one day...
Berating the concubine as she always did, the
wife snapped and threw her fan in anger. And receiving her scolding in downcast
silence as she always did, the concubine braced for the fan to strike.
It was an unfortunate accident, everyone said.
The fan just happened to hit the concubine in the eye. The shock sent her
stumbling backward, when she just happened to be standing at the top of a grand
staircase. The fall left her seriously injured—one leg, which had helped carry
her everywhere in a nimble, graceful dance, was badly broken, never to recover
the dexterity it once had.
Not long after that incident, the concubine
left the mansion to live in the deep wilderness on the outskirts, never to show
her face at their dwelling again.
For the first time since her marriage, the
wife felt at peace. Her husband continued to treat her with the polite
affection she was due, and the servants never spoke of the concubine in her
presence. If she ignored how once a month her husband would vanish for a few
days, only to return with heaps of rare medicines, she could live out her days
in happiness.
But that was no more than covering up a wound
that would never heal. Though hidden, it continued to fester, tormenting the
wife ever more.
And now, after over ten years, the concubine
had returned—for no other reason than to save her husband. No one could fault
her for any agitation on her part.
Chapter 3: Treatment (Part 1)
The horses ran as hard as they could, and when
they grew too exhausted to continue, the knight’s party switched to fresh
horses and sprinted on again. Never having ridden a horse before, Misha quickly
found herself exhausted too. But knowing the reason for their haste, she
couldn’t bring herself to complain. Plus, if she complained while being jostled
about on horseback, she’d probably just bite her tongue and hurt herself.
Though nerves had kept her tense at first, she
had eventually relaxed, leaning her full weight on the young knight behind her.
She realized that was easiest, both for her and for the knight. With time, she
was even able to accept being so tightly pressed against a man she had just
met, though that was mostly because she was too exhausted to maintain any sense
of embarrassment.
Once she had managed to force her body to
relax, her brain finally started moving again. And naturally, the first thing
that came to her mind was her father. What kind of injury was it? How long ago
had he been hurt? If he had left the battlefield immediately...maybe three
days?
The letter mentioned nothing other than that
he was gravely injured and on the verge of death. Misha hadn’t treated many
injuries herself, but her mother had drilled the knowledge of what to do into
her. Foremost in that knowledge was how difficult it was to treat an injury
that had been left to grow worse over time. If a wound wasn’t properly cleaned
right away, nasty stuff could get into it, causing the flesh to rot and the
blood to get contaminated. Once that happened, even an apothecary had a
fifty-fifty chance of saving them at best. The rest was up to the patient’s
endurance and luck.
Please let us be on time...!
Jostled back and forth on horseback as she
was, there was only one thing Misha could do: pray.
And so, after what felt like an eternity from
Misha’s perspective, they finally arrived at the mansion. Their horse dashed
right through the front door, taking them much farther into the house than any
horse had business going.
Finally slipping out of the saddle, Misha’s
legs unfortunately weren’t quite ready for the transition, dropping her to the
floor. Her bottom hurt, and her legs were wobbly and weak, just as expected
from someone unaccustomed to riding. For a first-time rider, a lap or two
around the stable would probably have been the most they could handle if the
horse was running at a gallop, but she had been subjected to it for two hours
straight. It was impressive she hadn’t just passed out.
But collapsing to the floor like that while
everyone else was okay was a bit too embarrassing. And yet, as if her legs now
belonged to someone else, no matter how she struggled, she just couldn’t get
them to move. Seeing her distress, the knight that brought her thus far lifted
her up under his arm.
“I’m impressed you made it here without any
whining. You’ll get feeling in your legs again soon. Until then, let’s find a
spot for you to rest.”
She nearly yelped at suddenly being pulled to
her feet. Still, she could clearly feel the knight’s sympathy through his curt
words, leading her to button up.
“Do as he says, Misha,” her mother instructed.
“I will go take a look and see what we need. Come along once you can move
again.” As pale as she was, her voice was strong. She marched her way farther
into the mansion.
“Please, come with me,” an older maid said,
guiding a dumbstruck Misha—or rather, the knight carrying her.
They were taken to a guest room facing the
inner courtyard. Decorated in a calm and clean style, the room had a
comfortable air. The knight set Misha down gently on one of the sofas in the
middle of the room. She had honestly expected him to throw her, so his care
took her by surprise.
“I will fetch some tea,” the maid declared,
heading to the small kitchenette in the corner of the room.
Meanwhile, Misha sank into the cushions. She
still felt like she was being shaken back and forth as she watched the maid go.
She then turned to look at the knight standing at her side.
She didn’t think she could stomach anything to
drink yet, but he would probably be fine. In fact, he probably hadn’t had a
minute’s rest since leaving the battlefield. He’d need something to drink for
his own health.
“Please, have a seat,” Misha said, motioning
to the sofa across from her. After a moment’s hesitation, the young knight sat
down.
As the tea arrived, Misha was starting to feel
a bit better, so she began rummaging around in her bag.
Hmm. Upset stomach, dizziness, and leg pain?
Eventually she drew out some pills and powder,
measuring them out in their proper amounts and mixing them in a small mortar
and pestle.
“Sorry, is there any more hot water?” she
asked, and by the time she finished speaking, the maid had placed a cup of
steaming hot water in front of her. Taking it with a word of thanks, Misha
mixed the prepared medicine into it and gulped it down.
The knight watched intently as the girl winced
at the taste. “What was that?”
Taking a sip of tea to clear the bitterness
from her mouth, Misha thought for a moment. “Stomach medicine and a painkiller.
And some herbs that help you feel refreshed.” She assumed giving him the names
of the medicines she used would be pointless, so she simplified the explanation
for him.
The knight responded with a look of
astonishment. “You’re also an apothecary?”
The tools she had laid out on the table in
front of her must have looked quite strange. The various small bags of powder
she carried probably all looked identical to him. Some would come out a little
green, and others a little brown, but there wouldn’t be enough difference for
him to distinguish between them.
“An apprentice, and I’ve only just been given
that title.” Misha shook her head before popping a sugar candy from the table
into her mouth. Being so used to raw fruit and honey, the sharp sweetness of it
brought a bit of a scowl to her face.
Taking another mouthful of tea, she slowly
attempted to rise back to her feet. She was still a bit shaky but much better
than before. After taking a few careful steps to make sure, she nodded.
“I should be okay now. Could you please take
me to my mother?” She normally spent her days running about the forest, so she
was actually quite sturdy. The unexpected trip on horseback might have taken
her by surprise, but she had recovered quickly.
Nonetheless, her rapid recovery was quite the
shock to the two accompanying her. The knight had expected her to need an hour
or two at the very least, while the old maid had been looking for an
opportunity to offer her a bed to rest in.
The knight had needed to carry her into the
room, yet as soon as she made some medicine for herself, she immediately stood
up and declared she was okay. It was a borderline frightening experience for
the two of them. Just what had been in that medicine? And who was this girl,
that she could make medicine that effective?
“Umm... Hello?” Misha tilted her head,
confused at the two paling faces staring at her. She never would have guessed
that her behavior was anything to be scared by.
“Ah, right. They should be with my lord now. I
will take you.” The maid was the first to recover, hurriedly stepping forward
to show Misha the way.
Grabbing her bag from the sofa, Misha hurried
to follow.
The first thing that struck her when she
stepped into the room was the smell, bringing a frown unbidden to her face.
Medicine, blood, and pus—every bit the scent of death.
Looking around the room, she found her mother
standing among the crowd and ran over to her side. Being so used to walking
around the forest, she had naturally learned to move softly, so her sudden and
unannounced appearance caused more than one of the adults to jerk back in
surprise. Meanwhile, her mother didn’t so much as lift her gaze from the mortar
and pestle she was working as she started doling out instructions.
“Make an antiseptic to clean the wound. They
are boiling water for us already, so start grinding up some lai seeds.”
Her mother’s curt instructions were all the
indication Misha needed to know how tense she was feeling, so she quickly did
as instructed. Since the moment she’d stepped into the room, she hadn’t been
able to avoid the truth. Her father was really about to die. Her mother’s
behavior only drove that reality home even more.
Suppressing the urge to cry, she pulled the
ingredients she needed from her bag. By dissolving the hard, brown seeds into
water, she made a powerful germicide. But if the solution was too strong, it could
start dissolving the flesh as well, so it needed to be handled carefully.
“How much?” Misha’s quiet question was met
with another short reply.
“A handful to start.”
At any other time, her mother’s tone would
have felt cold and hurtful, but Misha knew her mother’s brain was running full
tilt, searching for a way to save Misha’s father. This was always how she acted
when she was focusing hard on something. The others in the room listening might
have felt differently.
Misha focused on her work, crushing the small
hard seeds.
If you work them too hard, they start to turn
sticky. Without letting them get hot from the friction, slowly and carefully...
Muttering the method for crushing lai seeds
her mother had taught her under her breath, she quickly and accurately
reproduced the technique, reducing the seeds to a fine powder. Running the
crushed seeds through a fine sieve to remove the shells, she then started
grinding the remaining white powder further. Once she was satisfied, she
brought it over to the water.
“Misha, take over. I’ll work on the medicine.”
Her mother grabbed the powder from her hands,
turning her attention to a large pot being carried into the room. Watching her
go for a moment, Misha quickly snapped out of it and rushed over to where her
mother had been standing.
Looking into the mortar, she could tell her
mother had been halfway through making something here. She could have asked her
mother what it was, but she didn’t want to distract her. Her mother had turned
working with herbs and plants into a game for Misha before she was old enough
to speak, so reading the patterns of her mother’s work was as easy to Misha as
breathing. She wouldn’t make a mistake in something so simple.
That profound sense of trust between mother
and daughter left the other observers in the room agape. They truly were
witches of the forest. It was like they weren’t human.
“It’s ready, Misha,” her mother said, drawing
Misha’s attention away from her mortar. “Please show me the wound.”
At her mother’s urging, she stepped over to
the bed, the strong scent filling the air growing even thicker. Her father’s
usually lively and energetic face was pale and twisted in pain. Though they
said he was unconscious, he occasionally groaned in pain.
The chamberlain at their side swiftly drew
back the sheets covering him. Her mother must have already inspected the injury
herself, as his clothing and bandages were stripped away, revealing the wound.
A sword wound, running diagonally down his back. It was quite deep, still
oozing somewhat, the flesh at its edges dark with rot.
“It’s been four days since he was hurt. There
were no signs of poison, but never mind closing—the wound has started to
fester.” Her mother scowled, slowly explaining what was before them. “Either
the blade used was rusty, or it was covered in some kind of mud or dirt...
Regardless, something has contaminated the wound. They did a poor job of
cleaning it too.”
Taking the information from her mother as a
basis, Misha added, “He lost so much blood that his body had no chance of
fighting off anything that might get in the wound.”
Her mother nodded before looking up and around
the room.
“I’ll now begin cleaning the wound and
removing the rotten flesh. This treatment will put the lord’s life at risk, but
leaving him in this state will guarantee his death. He may start thrashing
about in pain, so I will need belts to restrain him, and at least two people to
hold him down.”
Her straightforward instructions set the room
abuzz.
“He could die from this?”
“You heard me, right? If we do nothing, he
will die for certain. So, we have to try, no matter how bad our chances.”
“Will it save him?” someone asked.
“I don’t know,” Misha’s mother responded after
a brief moment of hesitation. “It’s been too long since he was wounded.
Honestly speaking, it’s a miracle he’s still with us now.”
Cries of despair began to go up as she
answered question after question until a husky voice filled the room.
“If we do nothing, he will die. Please do
anything you can. If you save him, you will be rewarded handsomely.”
Murmurs of “the old lord” echoed as a deeply
wrinkled elderly man hobbled into the room on a cane. It seemed even with his
cane, he needed someone supporting him on the other side to walk, but his eyes
shone bright and clear.
The previous lord...so, my grandfather?
Misha’s eyes widened slightly at her first
meeting with someone of her extended family.
“I feel great shame at having to drag you out
of the forest after driving you there, but if there is anything you can do,
please lend us your aid. I may be too old to be useful anymore, but the kingdom
very much still needs him.” The sharp sound of the old
man’s cane striking the floor grew closer.
“I fled to the forest out of my own
selfishness,” Misha’s mother replied after a brief silence. “I should be the
one apologizing for my weakness. There is nothing for you to be ashamed of.”
Seeing her mother bow down in front of the old man, Misha hurriedly moved to
follow.
“So, this is your daughter? Seems you have
raised her well. Once this business is all done, please tell me all about her.”
The unexpected gentleness leeched the nervous
tension from Misha’s body. With how stubbornly her mother had refused to speak
of the mansion, Misha had assumed it was akin to a den of vipers. But if
nothing else, this old man didn’t seem to be their enemy. However, that didn’t
necessarily mean she felt any closeness to him for being her grandfather.
“Do everything Leyas says. As representative
of the lord of this domain, I’m giving you an order.” The old man’s declaration
sent a ripple through the room, and one by one, gazes turned to Misha and her
mother. Unlike Misha, cowed by the sudden influx of attention, her mother stood
proud and tall.
“This will soon become a difficult place for
the weak of heart. We can’t have people collapsing in here, so anyone who is
not helping, please leave. If you don’t trust me, I do not mind if you stay to
watch, but you cannot interfere.” Leyas then turned to Misha. “I’ll be removing
the rotten flesh. You will need to help. I’ll need you to sterilize the tools.
You have no cuts on your hands, right?”
Misha nodded with a gulp at her mother’s stern
expression.
First, they applied a pain-relieving salve to
the site of the wound. This would likely be next to useless due to necrosis,
but they did so anyway, even if just for their own peace of mind. Wrapping his
hands and feet in soft cloth, they bound him to the bed and had two large men
hold him down. He was unconscious, but that meant there was a greater risk he
would suddenly thrash about.
While her mother doled out instructions, Misha
busily prepared the tools they’d need. She had the knowledge in her head
already. She had seen much smaller wounds treated in a similar way. This was
the first time she was personally involved, though.
She made a desperate effort to keep herself
from openly shaking. Any fear shown by the apothecary would spark fear and
distrust in the patient. “Acting boldly is even more
important when you lack confidence.” That was the first thing her mother
had taught Misha when she had made the choice to become an apothecary. Bluffing
was a critical skill for members of their profession.
I can do this. We can save
him. It’s okay. It’s okay, Misha repeated in her
head over and over to encourage herself, all the while hoping no one noticed
her trembling.
“Are you ready, Misha?”
“Yes.”
The moment her mother’s calm, composed gaze
struck her, a switch was flipped in Misha’s head. Her thoughts became clear,
and her hands went still.
“Okay, then. Start applying the medicine
here.”
Hell was just beginning.
Chapter 4: Treatment (Part 2)
Misha collapsed onto the sofa, nerves finally
giving way to exhaustion. She had barely managed to get through her bath,
freeing herself of the blood and pus-covered clothing she had been wearing, but
she didn’t have the energy to even dry her hair. Perhaps as some sort of
consequence of her calm and detached behavior during the treatment, her head
felt too stuffed to allow any thoughts in.
Mom is amazing...
Although her mother had taken a bath right
alongside her, she had left to check on Misha’s father again once she was
clean.
Just a few more minutes...
Misha closed her eyes, letting herself go. But
as exhausted as she was, the tension of the situation wouldn’t release its grip
on her. Flashbacks of the treatment returned to her in a rush.
They had let the medical bath cool to body
temperature and used it to clean the surface of the wound. That much had gone
well. However, once her mother had started using something like a silver spoon
to scoop out bits of pus, clotted blood, and old salves, her supposedly
unconscious father had begun roaring and thrashing like a wild animal.
She had expected he wouldn’t be able to do
much with the way he was tied down, but the way he twisted his body had been
enough to knock their hands away as they worked. Considering the placement of
the wound, they couldn’t tie him down by his torso, so some men had tried to
hold him in place. Nevertheless, he’d continued to struggle, defying all
expectations. Here was a man who was supposed to be on death’s door.
Scolding the men as they flinched backward,
her mother had ended up climbing on top of her father’s back to hold him down
as she dug into the wound. Using a small knife, she had continued the bloody
work of cutting out the rotten flesh. Once bright red, exposed flesh was all
that remained, she and Misha had applied more medicine and wrapped him in
bandages. The whole process had taken well over an hour.
The ghastly scene had prompted more than half
of the waiting nobles to take their leave. As apothecaries, Misha and her
mother were just thankful that no one had vomited nearby.
The same old maid from before had led them to
their own bath after the treatment. Judging by her pale complexion, she must
have been outside the room listening to the screams the entire time.
It had been a brutal affair, but Misha’s
father had endured it. His face was still pallid, he was still unconscious, but
his heart was still beating. That was the first hurdle. Depending on how the
wound developed from here, they might have to repeat the bloody, painful
process yet again, but for now Misha chose not to consider that a possibility.
At long last, the memories gave her a
reprieve, allowing her to drift asleep.
“Misha, wake up.”
Her mother’s soft voice brought Misha back to
the world of the waking. Opening her bleary eyes, she was met with the pale yet
still disapproving face of her mother staring back at her.
“You went to sleep without drying your hair,
didn’t you? It’s a mess.”
Oh, she’s back to normal. Relieved, Misha slowly pushed herself up. Her body felt incredibly
sluggish.
“There’s some tea here. Would you like some?”
Accepting the cup and its familiar aroma, she
drank a mouthful. That cleared her head enough for the memories to start coming
back.
“How’s dad?”
Her mother’s face clouded over. “No change
yet. His body temperature isn’t going back to normal. He’s lost too much blood.
At this rate, the wound won’t close even after being cleaned, and it’s
impossible to say how much of his blood is contaminated.”
Her mother’s words brought Misha close to
tears. If the wound didn’t close, they’d have to do the same thing all over
again. And if he didn’t regain consciousness, they could do nothing but wait
for him to die anyway.
“What do we do?” Misha turned pleading eyes on
her mother.
“We still have one option,” she replied,
uneasy.
“What is it?!” Misha all but shouted at that
small sliver of hope.
Her mother, however, shook her head. “It’s a
new treatment from my old home, but there’s so much about it I don’t know; I
came here while it was still being developed. It’s very difficult—and dangerous.”
“Can’t you ask uncle?”
Her mother’s homeland was far away. Though the
populace of this country assumed her mother’s people had cut all ties with her,
she still had some contact. The “people of the Forest” did technically have
their own country, but they prized curiosity and freedom above all. If they
found something that caught their interest, national borders meant nothing to
them. They’d go wherever the wind took them.
Misha’s uncle was one such sort, and he had
secretly visited on a number of occasions. Though he only came once every few
years, he always brought tons of gifts and interesting stories, so Misha loved
him.
“It’s a secret technique that was never
allowed to leave our home. It won’t be that easy to get them to teach it to
me.”
“What kind of treatment is it?”
Since her mother said she was partway through
learning it when she left, Misha figured she must’ve had some
idea.
After a long silence, her mother finally
answered, “The idea is that if someone doesn’t have enough blood, you need to
give them more. But people can’t absorb blood through consuming it. So they
decided to try inserting it directly into their body. I told you about the
large pathways for blood, right? The ones that you must avoid harming at all
costs?”
Misha nodded, stunned by the sudden
explanation. Blood ran through pathways inside the body, some of which were
larger than others. If you cut those, the bleeding would be impossible to stop
and you would die. That was something her mother taught her when they were
butchering animals they had caught in the forest.
“The idea is to insert a hollow needle into
one of those paths, then send blood from a healthy person through it.”
“Then if we do the same thing for dad—!”
But her mother shook her head, hesitant. “One
in three people who received the treatment died. When I left, they were still
trying to figure out why.”
Testing that treatment would have been no easy
task. The only places with so many people dying of blood loss were
battlefields, but that was hardly the right environment for such a delicate
operation, and they obviously couldn’t risk the lives of those in good health.
There was no point in developing a treatment to save lives if it required
killing people.
“But... But...”
“Even if they’ve found the reason, I don’t
have time to find my brother and discuss it with him. It’s hard enough to get a
hold of him with the way he travels the world. By the time I make it home and
return here, your father will be long dead.”
Misha went silent. At some point tears had
started dripping down her face.
Watching her daughter silently crying, Leyas
finally sighed.
A man had been out journeying the world when
he became injured, unable to move. Leyas was the one who had found and helped
him. It took a month for his wounds to heal. That was all the time it took for
her to build up the resolve to cut her ties with her homeland and throw away
her future as a master apothecary. Even though they couldn’t always be
together, she had been happy. Despite her father-in-law being right about how
many would view her with pity, she had found bliss.
Would my brother call me stupid? Would he get
angry?
She recalled the look on her brother’s face
when she told him she was leaving with the man. He’d been worried she would
regret throwing away everything she had worked for until that point.
“Even if you don’t follow the family rules
like an idiot, there’s got to be a better way.” He’d
laughed, drawing a laugh out of her as well.
“Unfortunately, I’m not quite as
straightforward as you are.” And though he was still worried all the while, he
bid goodbye to her with a smile. If he were to follow the rules of their
people, that would be the last time they ever met.
However, a few years after Leyas moved into
the forest on the edge of the kingdom, her precious brother had stumbled upon
them deep in the woods, following a rumor. He was a genius and incredibly
fickle, but he treasured Leyas more than anything. At first, he’d tried to
convince her to come home with him, but in recent years, it seemed he had given
up on that, and he came only to visit. The fact he had finally accepted his
sister’s decision to remain still filled Leyas with joy, as if it had only
happened yesterday.
If I had known this was going to happen, I would
have let him talk...
A few years prior, her brother had informed
her that the mystery of the blood had been solved. But when he’d tried to
explain it to her, she’d immediately hushed him, terrified of the implication
of revealing the secrets of their people to an outsider as she was now.
“This is the result of my hard work,” he’d
said before handing her a small bag. “So please take this at the very least.”
Leyas squeezed her eyes tight now, recalling
that bag. She had told her daughter it was hopeless, but she couldn’t think of
any other way.
If it doesn’t work...I’ll take full
responsibility.
After sitting in silence for a while, Misha’s
mother finally opened her eyes and rose to her feet, her face resolute.
“Let’s go talk to my father-in-law. We’ll see
if he’s willing to take another gamble.”
Hurrying after her mother, it never occurred
to Misha how much she’d regret not getting her mother to explain further. After
talking about the new treatment method and its risks, Misha’s grandfather sat
in silence for a time.
“Is this a normal treatment where you come
from?” he asked.
“I cannot say. When I left, it was still being
researched. That’s why it is so dangerous,” she responded softly.
He gave a small nod. “According to the rumors,
the apothecaries of your land are head and shoulders above the rest. If only we
could have them here...”
Leyas’s homeland was so far away, and the
People of the Forest were particularly secretive. Outsiders knew very little
about them. Although he lamented that a better relationship with them might
have brought about a different future, Leyas shook her head.
“The moment I decided to go with my lord, they
cut all ties with me. There was nothing to be done.”
Misha was confused. It was true that he only
came once in a while, but they were still on very good terms with her uncle.
Why was her mother keeping that a secret?
“Very well. I said I would leave it all to
you, and I will. Give it a try.”
“Thank you.” Leyas bowed deeply before taking
Misha with her back to the side of the girl’s father.
His complexion remained horrid, but his
expression was at least peaceful. It seemed the painkillers were working.
“Misha, watch very carefully. This is an
invaluable skill that almost no one else knows of,” she whispered, her
apothecary’s facade coming back on.
“What’s that?” Misha asked as her mother
pulled an unfamiliar implement from her belongings.
“It’s a special tool. I snuck it out of my
home when I left to be with your father,” she said, though it was a little
white lie. She was holding a pair of rather large needles, which were attached
together by some kind of cord.
“This is hollow. We can use it to transfer
blood between people.”
“How did they make a hole in such a small
needle?”
“I have no idea. I didn’t make it myself. More
importantly, we need to sterilize them first. Can you boil some water?”
At her mother’s instruction, Misha lit the
hearth in the corner of the room on which she placed a pot. Leyas pulled back
the sleeve of his shirt and—just in case—slipped some sleeping powder under his
nose. She did not expect this procedure to be as painful as the last, but
things would turn dire if he started to thrash.
Deeno, please. Accept my
blood, Leyas begged in her heart, running a finger
down his pale cheek. He seemed so much more gaunt than she remembered.
“I’m ready, mom.”
Before Leyas knew it, a good amount of time
had passed. Misha was standing at her side, holding a tray with a cloth and the
needles with their tube.
With one last deep breath, Leyas switched
modes. It was the first time she was doing this in decades. Her skills had no
doubt gone rusty, so she needed to focus.
“First, we try inserting the needle just a
little,” Leyas said, tightening a cord around her upper arm. Her pale skin,
untouched by the sun, soon came alive with bright blue blood vessels.
“The large vessels are here and here. But
don’t use this one if you can help it. The blood will come out so fast, you’ll
have a hard time stopping it.”
Using her own body as an example, she
carefully explained the procedure to her daughter. Leyas couldn’t help but grin
at the serious expression on Misha’s face as she took it all in. The way she
hungered for knowledge and sucked it all in was just like Leyas when she was
younger.
Learning new things was so much fun back then.
Shaking off the nostalgia, Leyas picked up the
two needles. Detaching one from the tube, she then inserted the other into her
arm. There was a faint pricking sensation, then blood began running through the
needle. Apparently, her skills hadn’t dulled quite as much as she had feared,
she thought with a sigh of relief. After letting a few drops of blood flow
through and out the other end of the tube, she bent it back to stop the flow.
Next, she took the arm of her husband, lying
motionless on the bed. She tied a cord around his arm the same way she had her
own, but perhaps because of all the blood he had lost, the paths didn’t show
up. However, Leyas was experienced enough to find the spot she was looking for
anyway.
With quick, sharp movements, she inserted the
needle into his arm. Blood immediately started gushing out, so she wasted no
time connecting it to the tube still attached to her arm. She immediately felt
blood flowing from her above to her husband below.
“One, two, three...” After counting slowly to
a hundred, she quickly removed the needle from her husband’s arm and wrapped it
in a bandage. “Misha, hold this.” After confirming there was blood coming from
the needle still, she then removed it from her own arm.
“Is dad okay?” Misha asked, her voice
trembling. The red splotch growing on the bandage felt somehow scarier than
usual.
“I don’t know. If there is no change in him
after some time, that means he accepted the blood. Then we’ll be able to
relax.”
“What kind of change?”
“There are lots of possibilities. Fever, pain,
jaundice...”
Misha took mental note of all the possible
symptoms as she watched her father rest. She wouldn’t let the slightest sign of
something going wrong pass her by. That was the limit of what she could do at
this point.
The two of them spent the next half a day
taking turns watching him and sleeping on the room’s sofa. Eventually, Leyas
concluded that he must have accepted her blood, earning a huge sigh of relief
from her daughter. They couldn’t let their guards down yet, but they had
finally found a good reason to be optimistic.
After checking the wounds on his back one last
time, she instructed the maid to inform them of any change, no matter how
slight, and returned with Misha to the room set apart for them.
“We still have a long way to go. Rest while
you can, and eat when you have the chance.”
With all that had happened, Misha had no
appetite at all, but she nevertheless followed her mother’s instructions and
forced down some of the food that had been provided for them. She realized that
they couldn’t afford to be collapsing themselves.
It’s been such a long day since that mail bird
showed up. Wait, has it really been only one day?!
Misha suppressed a sigh as she bit into some
roast chicken. So many things that never could have happened in the forest had
hit her all at the same time. Now she felt like her head was about to explode.
“You must be tired. Why don’t we call it a
night?”
At her mother’s urging, Misha lay down on the
bed. No sooner had her head hit the pillow than a deep, dreamless sleep
welcomed her.
Chapter 5: As an Apothecary
When Misha awoke, her mother was already gone.
Had Misha slept in later because she was still a child, or was this a
difference in their experience?
She’s incredible...
Pressing a hand to her still fuzzy head as she
sat up, she looked over to the empty bed, which was likely already cold. After
sitting in a sleepy daze for a minute, she finally pulled herself to her feet
and trudged out to the room next door. Looking around, she saw a white napkin
covering something on the table. When she moved it aside, she saw a familiar
sandwich underneath. Her mother must have made breakfast for her.
“Let’s put some tea on.”
Stepping over to the room’s mini kitchen,
Misha got to boiling some water. There was a teapot ready for use, likely
placed there by her mother, which Misha filled and took back to the table.
Though she was curious about how her father was doing, she wasn’t worried so
long as her mother was at his side. And above all, Misha needed something to
eat if she was going to have energy for the day. An apothecary’s work was an
endurance contest—Misha had concluded as much after spending so much time
running around the forest, looking for herbs.
As Misha finally moved to pick up the
sandwich, she noticed a small letter placed on the table beside it.
“Many wounded came back with your father. I will
look after him, so please take care of the others for me. Consider it practical
training as an apothecary.”
“Oh. Yeah, I guess he wouldn’t be the only one
hurt.”
In fact, he was supposed to have led the army
from the rear. If he was wounded at all, that must have meant there were tons
of casualties. Misha slumped her shoulders. She couldn’t help but feel
disappointed in herself for not realizing that earlier, obsessed as she had
been with caring for her father. She really was inexperienced; there was no
point in cramming all that knowledge into her head if she couldn’t put it to
use.
“I’ll do my best,” she murmured, biting into
the sandwich. And the first step was to make sure she was well-fed.
After finishing her breakfast, Misha grabbed
her tools and her bag of herbs and made her way back to the entrance hall. For
now, she’d do as her mother said and have someone take her to the wounded. She
had no idea where they were being kept, so she had little choice but to ask
anyone she could find.
Figuring she’d encounter someone sooner or
later if she walked around, she wasn’t disappointed. In fact, she quite quickly
encountered someone who was already out looking for her.
“Oh, you’re the knight from yesterday.” Misha
stopped at the familiar face.
“Yes, my name is Kite Dyson. Lady Leyas has
requested I come guide you.”
Misha nodded. Though his response came off as
a bit curt, Misha was familiar enough with him to know it wasn’t from ill
intent, so it didn’t bother her.
“Please and thank you,” she replied with a
small curtsy. Internally, she was celebrating that she didn’t need to run
around searching for the people she was supposed to be helping, but after the
greeting, Kite didn’t move.
What’s wrong? Is he injured?
Judging by how intense their ride had been
yesterday, she found that hard to believe, but nevertheless she examined him
again with an apothecary’s eyes.
He doesn’t seem to have any difficulty moving his
arms and legs, and there’s no smell of blood. His complexion is good... Yeah.
He’s fine, she
thought with a nod to herself.
Then she tilted her head to the side. So, why isn’t he moving?
“Um, Mr. Kite?” If she couldn’t figure it out,
her best bet was to ask the man himself.
The question seemed to snap him back to
reality, as he quickly turned on his heel. “This way.”
Misha had to hurry a bit to keep up with him.
Kite took her to a large room in another
building. All of the other furniture had been removed, replaced with rows and
rows of beds. The air was filled with the sound of groaning and the thick
smells of blood, pus, and medicine.
“This room has our most severely wounded. They
have been given medicine and painkillers already. Is there anything else you
can do for them?”
“Is there no doctor here?” Misha asked.
“Our doctor was with us on the battlefield. He
was killed in action. His apprentice has his hands full there. We have no one
with medical knowledge here, so we are simply following the instructions that
were sent back with them.”
There was no doctor to give instructions. Her
mother, who usually filled that role, wasn’t here either. It seemed she’d have
to decide everything herself.
A shiver ran through her body as that
realization struck her. Her decisions here could determine whether these people
lived or died. This would be a test of her resolve to become an apothecary.
Misha bit her lip.
I decided I wanted to do this. I was bound to end
up in a place like this eventually. Am I going to run away just because it came
sooner than I expected?!
As scared as she was, even the cowardly part
of herself didn’t hesitate to answer the call. She would do all she could here.
“Who is in charge here?” she asked.
“That would be me. My name is Luciana.” One of
the servants stepped up with a curtsy. She was wearing an apron over her maid
uniform, and she looked to be in her late twenties. A hint of nervousness and
no small amount of doubt filled her eyes as she looked over Misha.
Luciana had heard rumors that the forest witch
had brought another apothecary with her, but she couldn’t help but worry when
she saw how young Misha was. Those rumors had also included how much Misha had
helped in the treatment of the lord, but they weren’t exactly easy to believe
when someone saw Misha for the young teenager that she was.
Meanwhile, Misha also frowned as she looked up
at Luciana. The makeup she was wearing entirely failed to hide the dark circles
under her eyes, and beneath her triangular cloth headpiece, her hair was in
total disarray—not to mention the sleep still lingering at the corners of her
eyes. Her face was gaunt and harrowed, making her exhaustion readily apparent.
“Miss Luciana, I apologize for being rude, but
when was the last time you took a bath? And when was the last time you slept in
a proper bed?”
Having expected the questions to be about the
patients, Luciana’s mind blanked for a moment.
“Um...a bath? Three days ago, I suppose? And
as for a bed... I’m not sure. We’ve been taking turns sleeping on the sofa in
the waiting room,” she finally replied, her reflexive honesty bringing a grim
look to Misha’s face.
“First, please call all the staff looking
after the wounded.”
In the end, four women gathered, ranging in
age from their teens to their thirties. Each and every one of them looked pale
and weak, their clothes worn and dirty.
“There are two more, but they are sleeping at
the moment,” Luciana spoke hesitantly, seeing Misha’s severe expression. Her
fear over what this girl in front of her might do was greater than any concern
about her legitimacy. She felt like one wrong word would trigger an avalanche
of angry scolding, as if it were her own mother staring down disapprovingly at
her. The other servants were similarly cowed, staring at their feet.
“That’s fine, let them sleep... Wait, you
don’t mean on the sofas, do you?” Misha was about to nod before she remembered
what Luciana had said at first. Luciana averted her gaze, earning a look of
shock from the little healer. But with a heavy sigh, she managed to keep her
cool. “I will take over for now. All of you please rest. Don’t come back until
tomorrow morning.”
“What?!” the four servants exclaimed as one.
“I understand you have been desperately doing
everything you can to help. But at this rate, you’re just going to collapse. Go
back to your rooms, take a bath, and sleep well,” Misha said, giving Luciana a
serious look, hoping she would understand Misha was just as worried about her
and the rest of the women working. Meanwhile, the little healer’s sparkling
jade eyes and gentle tone were slowly working their way into the servants’
hearts.
“I promise I will take care of the lives you
have worked so hard to save. I may look young, but my teacher has approved of
me as a professional apothecary, and she has ordered me to take care of the
people here. Can you please trust me?”
The confidence with which she spoke and the
proud, strong stance she took made Misha look two or three times her size in
the maids’ eyes. Though still bewildered, Luciana and the others finally
nodded, bringing a bright smile to Misha’s face.
“Good. Please get a good night’s sleep and
come back full of energy tomorrow. I’ll be waiting.”
Thank goodness they all did as I asked. They must
have been really tired to listen to some random kid who appeared out of
nowhere.
Misha sighed in relief once they had gone, her
gaze eventually landing on a somewhat unsettled Kite.
He wasn’t sure how to express what he was
feeling right now. The exhausted maids had looked like they were on the verge
of breaking down, but with a look and a command from Misha, it was as if the
girl had lifted a curse from them. They had immediately relaxed, their faces
awash with solace.
It was bizarre—and all this from one little
girl. He couldn’t deny that she possessed a strange aura of dignity.
He thought back to their first meeting. That
day, he had almost been against his orders to run his horse ragged in a
desperate effort to save their dying lord. He had heard rumors of the powerful
medicines their lord brought back from the forest, and Kite himself had been
helped by them in the past. Treated wounds healed twice as fast compared to
when they used ordinary medicines. Curious, he had inquired about the
medicines, only for their doctor to proudly declare that they came from the
Witch of the Forest.
He’d learned that the witch was the lord’s
concubine brought here from the far north. After losing a power struggle in the
home with the lord’s wife, she had been driven out of the mansion to live in a
forest on the edge of their territory.
There were plenty of malicious rumors about
her being rustic, uncultured, and uneducated, just as there were plenty of
favorable rumors about her being kind, down-to-earth, and intelligent. The
unpleasant ones circulated among the high-ranked nobility, while the auspicious
ones were found among the common workers. The distinction was clear; it all but
guaranteed that the mean-spirited ones came from the wife, who bore some kind
of grudge against her husband’s concubine.
To prevent the conflict between them
escalating further, the concubine was taken away and hidden. Kite didn’t know
what exactly that conflict had entailed, as those who witnessed it refused to
speak on the matter. All he knew was that for a few days every month, his lord
would disappear, only to return with armfuls of powerful medicine. Only a rare
few knew exactly where he had gone.
He was then sent to pick up the Witch of the
Forest. It was everyone’s last desperate hope to save their gravely wounded
lord. None of them seemed to mind they were relying on the very woman they had
driven out of their house. Being one of the knights responsible for protecting
their lord on his way back from the battlefield, Kite was one of those with
little in the way of hope. Begged by his commander, practically forced to go
along, he went along deep into the forest to find a small, crude cabin inhabited
by a woman in plain robes.
Despite being beautiful enough to be mistaken
for a spirit of the forest, she didn’t have any such sinister aura about her as
the title of “witch” would imply. Not to mention she had a daughter, a small,
slender girl who paled and trembled in his arms at her first experience riding
a horse. Nothing seemed sinister about them.
As such, they had spent a great deal of time
in physical contact with each other on horseback, but that engendered little in
the way of feelings in him. He held her quite tight to himself, but only
because he was constantly afraid of her falling. There was no passion or desire
in him at all. Honestly, the fact this little girl was saddled with the title
“daughter of a witch” was laughable.
But now, he couldn’t help but see how
beautiful this little girl was. According to the rumors, she had been deeply
involved in helping her mother treat their lord. He’d seemed likely to pass
away at any moment, but the two of them kept him firmly rooted in their own
world. She hadn’t so much as twitched at the brutal treatment that made the
adults in the room cringe and cower.
It was hard to believe she was the same girl
that had barely made it here on horseback. Though now that he thought about it,
when she had seemed like she was on the edge of collapse, it had only taken a
bit of self-made medicine for her to pop back onto her feet. Even when she’d
seemed dead tired, with a pinch of medicine and a few minutes to rest, he’d
seen the life rushing back into her face.
And then here she was, arriving at this place
for the first time yet boldly admonishing and instructing the adults around
her. It was honestly like she had some kind of magic.
A little uncomfortable under Kite’s stare,
Misha gave an awkward smile and a shrug. “I guess I’m out of helpers now,” she
joked.
With a small sigh, Kite removed his sword and
coat, and he rolled up his sleeves. He could deal with his bewilderment later.
There were wounded people all around him. Misha had the ability to help them,
so at the very least she wasn’t an enemy. Chivalry had engrained a sense of
meritocracy in him, and surviving the horrors of war had made him into a
realist. It didn’t matter how suspicious her techniques were. If they could
save his comrades, he was happy to have them. If trusting her ended up being
the wrong choice, he knew well enough how to use a sword, and he quietly swore
that he wouldn’t hesitate to do so.
“You can leave the manual labor to me. I don’t
have any medical knowledge, though, so don’t expect anything there,” he said,
veiling the darker thoughts in his mind.
Misha nodded with a smile. “That’s great,
thank you. Okay then, please come with me.”
Her first instruction was to get the windows
open, something the two of them did together. The windows and curtains, closed
tight to shut out the early spring chill, were thrown open, letting in a soft
sunlight and gentle breeze. Noticing the stale air starting to move, a number
of the family members of the wounded lifted their faces to see what was going
on. As those tired gazes gathered on Misha, she answered them with a bright
smile, her mother’s lesson on the importance of appearing confident in the back
of her mind.
“Hello, everyone. My name is Misha. I’m here
working as an apothecary. I’ve been asked to take care of everyone here. I’ll
be taking a look at everyone in order, so I’d appreciate the help from anyone
who is able.”
“You’re an apothecary?” a young woman
questioned immediately. Her tied up hair and clothing made it clear she was
married, but it couldn’t have been for very long. She still had an innocent
youth about her.
In the bed beside her was a man whose face was
wrapped in bandages, only his mouth barely peeking out from beneath them. The
bandages were soaked in blood, but they were not the bright red that one might
have expected, meaning they had to be quite old.
It was all Misha could do to keep from
scowling. Had they run out of bandages, or was there just no one around to give
proper instructions? No matter how she looked at it, there was an absolute
mountain of work to be done here.
Maybe I should have kept someone who understood
the situation better.
A small regret crept into the back of her
mind, but it was too late to worry about that. She couldn’t just call one of
them back now. Instead, Misha met the woman’s gaze and nodded.
“That’s right. I’m going to change these
bandages and take a look at the wound. Do we have clean cloths and water?”
“Y-Yes. I’ll get some.” Though still clearly
not convinced, with nothing else she could do but hold her husband’s hand as he
suffered, she was willing to grab at any chance to get help. After pulling some
white pieces of cloth from her belongings, she ran off, most likely to get some
water.
After watching her go, Misha stepped close to
the wounded patient and whispered, “I’m going to remove your bandages now. The
blood has dried, so it might hurt if I have to peel them off. If it’s too much
to bear, please let me know.”
Though his mind must have been muddled by pain
and fever, her words still seemed to reach him. He gave a small nod.
“Could you get me some hot water, Mr. Kite? In
as big a bowl as possible. I could also use clean cloths and bandages,” she
began giving instructions as she lined her tools up on the side table.
“Got it.” Kite immediately turned and stepped
through a door, likely where there was some water. At the same time, the woman
returned with a bucket of water and some cloths. Misha mixed a small amount of
powdered medicine into the water, turning it gradually from a faint green to
purple.
“This kills the germs. There’s no point in
treating their wounds if my hands are dirty,” Misha explained to the concerned
woman as she dunked her hands in the mixture, then started peeling back the
bandages.
Dropping the bits with dried blood and other
mess into the bucket, she quickly revealed the wound and began inspecting it.
It stretched from the top of his head to the top of his right ear. It was
pretty deep, but luckily there didn’t seem to be any damage to the bone. Much
of the skin was gone, though, so it would likely take a great deal of time to
heal.
“His hair is in the way, so I’m going to cut
it.” Informing the now somewhat ill-looking woman of what she was doing, Misha
cut the man’s hair around the wound to better reveal the injury. She then used
her antiseptic solution to clean away more of the dirt and blood. After sewing
up the deeper part of the wound, adding a bit of medicine and reapplying a
fresh bandage, she was done.
She worked quickly and without hesitation, so
it took very little time altogether. As Kite returned, she got his help in
getting the man to sit up so that she could give him some medicine to keep the
wound from festering, something for his fever, and a painkiller.
“Please keep an eye on him. You can use a warm
and damp cloth to wipe away his sweat. Make sure he is consuming water
regularly too. When dinner comes, mix some of this medicine into warm water for
him and have him drink it.”
The woman took Misha’s instructions with a
deep bow of her head before Misha moved on to the next man. Despite being so
much younger and smaller than her, Misha had given her a surge of confidence.
It had felt like death might swoop in and collect her husband at any moment,
and she had felt helpless to do anything but watch, but now she could see his
condition was already improving.
Maybe because of the medicine she had given
him, his strained, pain-filled expression had already started to soften, and he
seemed to have slipped into a restful sleep. At last, she believed her husband
had come back to her. The stress on her heart lifted all at once.
After staring at her husband’s sleeping face
for a time, she bit her lip and turned to the departing apothecary, quickly
following after her. She had no knowledge of medicine, but there was probably
something she could do to help. There were plenty of suffering people still
here.
“Is there something I can do to assist you?”
the woman asked, running up to Misha’s side.
With a bright smile, Misha responded, “Of
course! Thank you. Could you get me some hot water?”
Deep wounds needed to be stitched. Festering
wounds needed to be cleaned out, sterilized, and treated with medicine. Broken
bones that had set already needed to have their bandages removed, the injury
inspected, and the bones reset properly. Fever medicine, painkillers, and weak
tranquilizers needed to be dosed differently for each patient based on their
symptoms and body type.
Misha moved swiftly, calmly, and—as was
evident even to the uninformed observer—with extreme precision. Everywhere she
went, the pained expressions of the wounded were lifted.
At first, the concerned family members of the
patients could only watch in bewilderment, but slowly they each stood up and
began pitching in. Each time Misha would happily thank them and give them a
small task.
Fetch hot water. Change the sheets. Get some
nutritious food. They were small things any person could do, but all absolutely
had to be done. Fearing anything they might do would just worsen the condition
of their loved ones, they had only been able to watch by the sidelines as they
suffered in bed, so they were glad to have clear and explicit instructions on
how to help.
The smell of blood and pus in the groan-filled
room was slowly replaced by the scent of medicine and antiseptic. At the same
time, the concerned family members’ faces gradually started to brighten as
well.
Kite watched the whole transformation with
great surprise as he followed Misha scurrying among the beds. Every patient in
this room was gravely wounded, and many of them were knights Kite knew. At
first, their recovery had appeared hopeless, that it would be better to just
put them out of their misery, but now they slept without pain. It was a moving
sight.
It really is like magic, Kite thought.
One patient had a wound that just wouldn’t
stop bleeding, but with a pinch of powder from Misha’s bag, it stopped almost
immediately. After waiting a while, Misha wiped it away to find the dark,
bloody flesh had once again taken on a healthy pink hue. She then applied some
ointment, wrapped it in gauze and tied it with a bandage.
“Did you make that medicine yourself too?”
Kite asked despite himself.
Misha nodded, her hands not even slowing down.
“This medicine stops the bleeding and encourages the cells to grow faster. Ever
since the war started, my mother’s had us preparing lots of stuff like this. I
never expected I’d be applying it myself, though.” Handing some pills to the
woman at the bedside and giving her instructions to give them to the patient,
Misha turned to the next bed.
There sat a man, propped up on pillows into a
sitting position. The buttons on the front of his shirt were open, revealing a
chest covered in bandages. His hair was short and bright red, his eyes brown
with a strong reddish hue. A bright, happy smile lit his face as he looked back
at Misha. He was probably a little over thirty, quite handsome despite the
stubble growing in to match his hair. He held an unlit cigarette in his mouth,
shaking it around out of boredom.
“Hey kid. You’re pretty good for bein’ so
small,” he called out to her casually as she approached the bed.
But before Misha could reply to his greeting,
Kite stepped forward to swipe the cigarette from his mouth. “Captain Shydein,
what are you doing, smoking again?”
“C’mon, Kite. Don’t be such a stick in the
mud. You can see it wasn’t lit.” The man named Shydein laughed and shrugged,
like a child caught mid-prank.
“That’s not the issue.” Kite gave an
exasperated sigh, placing the cigarette gently down on the table beside them,
rather than crushing it in his hand. Something in Kite seemed to relax as he
did so, earning a confused look from Misha. It seemed these two were pretty
close.
Noticing her attention, Kite stood up
straight. “This is Shydein Rusbell, the captain of our company. However, he was
injured in the fighting, thus he is here for treatment. He is my commanding
officer.”
The brisk, polite explanation made Kite look
very much like a proper knight. It was a strange contrast to the frank way he
normally spoke, making Misha frown slightly. Something felt really off about
it.
Shydein seemed to feel the same way, as he
gave a much more pronounced grimace. “Knock it off. Hearing you talk like that
is gross. I’m nothing that fancy. Just a loser who’s outlived his time, and
lost one of his arms to show for it.”
The captain’s self-deprecating joke had Kite
biting his lip in frustration. “That’s only because you were covering for us
new recruits!”
“And half of them still died. Doesn’t change
that I’m useless as a soldier now either. Oh, don’t make that face. I’m still
alive, right? Just means I gotta find somethin’ else to do with myself.”
“Would you mind if I took a look at your
injury?” Misha interjected.
“Go ahead.” Without hesitation, the captain
slid out of his shirt.
His right arm stopped just beyond the elbow.
The tightly wrapped bandage around it was dark with dried blood and fluid.
Though he spoke in a bright and cheery tone, his behavior couldn’t mask the
paleness in his face. He had lost a lot of blood.
“The blade that took my arm off cut into my
side as well. Luckily, I was wearing chain mail, so it didn’t get very deep.”
She peeled back the bandages on his chest to
find another wound, stretching from his right flank to the left side of his
chest. Looking at the stitch work on it, Misha frowned. All of the stitching
she had seen so far looked rough and amateurish. Either they hadn’t had enough
time to do a proper job or the doctor in charge wasn’t very experienced. There
were no signs of infection, though, so Misha assumed it had at least been
cleaned properly.
Giving it another round of disinfection, Misha
added a bit of medicine and retied the bandages. He was a heavily muscled man,
so much so she couldn’t even wrap her arms around him to get the bandages back
in place. As she clicked her tongue in frustration at her own small size, Kite
stepped in to help her.
Taking a look next at his amputated arm, she
noticed it had been thoroughly burned.
“We couldn’t stop the bleeding, so we
cauterized it,” he casually admitted to using a rather barbaric form of
treatment, earning a scowl from Misha.
What are we, savages?! This is unbelievable!
Luckily, they had kept the burning just to the
face of the wound, so the risk of it getting worse was pretty low, but it had
still been extremely reckless. Quietly fuming, Misha continued working on the
injury without pause.
“So, you’re the daughter of that rumored
forest witch?” the captain asked. “I guess even someone as young as you can be
a witch. You certainly seem good at this.”
“If only I really was a witch. Then I could
use magic to make your arm grow back,” Misha replied nonchalantly as she
quickly whipped up something to treat burns rather than the usual medicine. She
applied the purple paste to the wound, which she then quickly wrapped in gauze
and bandages again. “Unfortunately, I’m just a normal human. The best I can do
is put some medicine on it.”
“No, that’s more than enough.” Shydein’s eyes
tightened a bit at the cool sensation of the ointment. “Thanks to you, these
guys will all see tomorrow. I’m really grateful.”
“You’re welcome,” Misha managed after a short
pause. The honest thanks had taken her a bit by surprise, but that surprise
quickly gave way to another smile. Even something as simple as that made it
feel worth it to have come all the way here from their home in the forest.
“I’ll leave some painkillers and fever medicine for you here, so make sure you
take them. And no, you can’t smoke instead.”
Shydein gave a small shrug as the tiny
apothecary glared at the cigarette still sitting on the table. “It’s
surprisingly good stuff, you know. These ones are pretty strong.”
“No!” Misha and Kite shouted back in unison.
They then shared a startled look with each other, earning a laugh from Shydein.
“You guys seem to get along. You’re totally on
the same wavelength.”
Misha turned a scowl on the laughing captain
with a sigh.
“Anyone would react the same way. Anyway, no
smoking or alcohol. It’ll stop you from healing properly.”
“You got it, Miss Witch.” As Shydein gave a
joking bow, Kite reached forward and snatched the cigarettes out of his shirt
pocket. “Hey, come on!”
“I’ll hold on to these until you’re allowed to
have them again. Come, my lady, let’s move on.” Kite declared, gently pushing
Misha forward.
Though Kite was able to ignore the hateful
glare that followed them as they left, Misha couldn’t help but giggle. “You two
are really close, huh?” she asked as she fetched more herbs and water.
“He acts like that now, but on the
battlefield, he commands a lot of respect,” Kite finally replied after a long
silence, eliciting another laugh from her. Kite stared at her in silence for a
while again, before suddenly dropping to one knee and bowing his head. “I have
been quite rude to you, underestimating you as a young girl with no experience.
Please forgive me. You have saved so many people here today.”
Misha was immediately flustered. An older man
had never apologized to her like this before, so she had no idea how to
respond.
“P-Please, get up. I didn’t think you were
being rude at all. And it’s true, I am pretty young... P-Please... You’re
embarrassing me,” she babbled for a bit, finally managing to convince him to
lift his head.
Looking into his eyes from where he knelt, she
could now see they weren’t the same dark black as his hair that she had first
assumed, but were actually a deep blue, glittering with color as the light
struck them at a new angle.
They’re so pretty...
Misha’s young curiosity prompted her to stare
into Kite’s eyes for a while, while Kite stood motionless on one knee, only
able to wonder what she was doing. As a result, they ended up staring
wordlessly at each other for a bit, until a very pronounced cough snapped them
out of it.
Apparently, they had caught the attention of
one of the family members of the wounded who had been helping them with the
water. There seemed to be a mischievous light in their eyes as they watched.
“Uh...right. To the next one?” Feeling a bit
awkward, Misha gave a muddled smile as she put her things into the wagon and
pushed it back toward the room of waiting injured.
“I’m exhausted...”
At long last, Misha made it back to her room,
collapsing onto the sofa. It wasn’t until late in the afternoon before she had
gotten around to seeing everyone in the makeshift infirmary, and she hadn’t
been able to take a moment to rest the whole time. Though she hadn’t felt it
while the patients were in front of her, the moment she stepped back into her
own room, the fatigue of the day slammed down on her. She didn’t have the
energy to move a finger.
“That was so scary...” she murmured into the
cushions, curling up and wrapping trembling arms around herself.
She possessed all the knowledge. She hadn’t
done this often, but she had occasionally gone to the village at the edge of
the forest, where she watched her mother treat the injured and the sick. Still,
she had never been anything more than her mother’s assistant. This had been her
first time directly dealing with the patients by herself.
Besides that, she had also never seen people
so gravely wounded before, the only exception being her father the day before. Plus it was her first time stitching up human flesh.
Although she had practiced before on small dead animals and boars, this had
been her first time sewing stitches on something still alive, let alone human.
Feeling nervous in the face of such
responsibilities was only natural for a girl as young as Misha, but she knew
she couldn’t show that unease to her patients. Any distress in her own
mannerisms would cause them more worry.
On top of that, Misha was only thirteen. She
could hardly fake any age or experience, so she was starting in the red. If she
did poorly, her patients might refuse treatment altogether. Really, if there
had been another doctor or healer present, Misha likely wouldn’t even have had
a chance to help. She knew that full well, and it was all the more why she
couldn’t show even the slightest bit of unease in her work.
“It’s fine. I did well. I didn’t make a single
mistake, and I knew how to treat everyone. I did fine. It’s okay, it’s okay...”
she continued to murmur over and over, still shaking in her own arms.
She stayed like that for who-knows-how-long,
but eventually a knock at the door snapped her out of it, causing her to jump
upright. Luckily, she had stopped shaking, even if her face was still a bit
pale.
“Excuse me. I have brought you some food.” The
older maid from the other day pushed a cart into the room. Expressionless, she
quickly laid the meal out on the table. “If there is anything you cannot eat,
please let me know.”
Although she could barely move a finger
before, Misha found a renewed sense of energy upon seeing a steaming hot plate
of food on the table. Soft bread, steaming soup, and a large slab of meat
roasted with herbs and spices—hunger overtook her. There was even a collection
of three varieties of sliced fruit.
“It all looks fantastic. Thank you.”
She didn’t wait for a reply before digging in
to the meal, a decision that made her starving body rejoice—even though she
knew her mother would scold her. Careful to at least keep to a reasonably
proper pace, she steadily worked her way through the food on the table. She was
so focused on her food, she didn’t notice the maid’s expression soften into a
gentle smile as she ate.
“That was great. Thank you,” Misha said once
the last crumb was gone, sipping at her tea. The gentle aroma of jasmine
brought a sigh out of her.
I’m stuffed... That was amazing.
Having fully relaxed, Misha knew that
sleepiness was soon to follow. With her nerves exhausted, her belly full, and
the relaxing effect of the tea, it was hard to keep her eyes open.
As Misha started nodding off, tea still in her
hand, she heard the maid calling out to her.
“If you plan to sleep, please feel free to use
the bed.”
But already halfway to dreamland, it was quite
difficult for her to comply.
“Just for...a little. After a nap...I’ll look
at the others...so please...wake me up...”
Barely managing to squeeze out her words, she
let go of consciousness and drifted away into a happy slumber.
“Thank you for your hard work,” the maid
murmured, snatching up the teacup miraculously before a single drop was
spilled. After laying the young girl down on the sofa, she headed off to the
bedroom to find a blanket for her. As small as Misha was, she was still too big
for the maid to carry her all the way to bed by herself.
Returning with a light blanket, she frowned at
the knight—her nephew, in fact—now standing beside the sleeping girl.
“Kite, it’s rude to enter a girl’s room
unannounced,” she scolded, albeit in a whisper.
“I did knock. There
was no reply, so I was worried something was wrong.”
Despite the obvious excuse, the maid’s scowl
nevertheless softened. “No matter. Having you here is convenient. Please carry
her to the bed for me.”
Understanding his scolding had been cut short,
Kite hesitated only a moment before leaning down and taking Misha up in his
arms.
She was so small and light, it sparked an odd
feeling in him. The way she carried herself and the way she treated the injured
gave her such a strong, powerful air. That same larger-than-life healer being a
small, delicate girl was a dizzying juxtaposition. It was hard to believe this
peacefully sleeping girl was the same one who’d been tirelessly treating the
injured not long ago.
“There were so many
wounded. She must be exhausted,” the maid murmured as she followed him into the
bedroom. Watching Misha go about treating the wounded had likely sparked a very
different kind of feeling in her. Setting the sleeping girl down on the bed,
Kite stood aside as his usually stern-faced aunt affectionately tidied up
Misha’s disheveled hair, then put a blanket over her.
“Let’s leave her for a bit. Come on, you too.”
With that sharp suggestion, his aunt stepped out of the room, and he
reflexively did as he was told. “By the way, why are you here in the first
place?”
Kite went quiet. He’d figured she was probably
done eating, so he’d come to bring Misha back to the infirmary. She had seemed
full of energy when he dropped her off, so he hadn’t expected her to be asleep
when he arrived.
I really shouldn’t be surprised. There’s no way
she could keep pace with a trained knight.
But when he voiced his thoughts, he couldn’t
help but agree with his aunt that he hadn’t been considerate enough of her.
His aunt—his father’s younger sister—had
married once but lost her husband before they were able to have any children.
Deciding against remarrying, she instead had come to work at the duke’s estate.
Strict and proper, she had taken care of Kite many times since he was young, so
he still listened to her as he would his mother. She had seen through his
intentions the moment he had found himself at a loss for words.
“We’ll give her another hour and then check in
on her. Come back then.” With a sigh, she drove him out of the room.
Left heartlessly shut out, Kite stood
motionless in front of the door for a bit before finally sighing and turning
away.
I guess none of them are in critical condition
anyway.
He expected when he got back to the infirmary
and informed those waiting that Misha would be a bit longer, he’d get another
earful about rushing her.
Chapter 6: Leyas’s Memories
Ba-dmp. Ba-dmp. Ba-dmp. Ba-dmp.
Leyas looked into the face of her husband,
feeling his pulse through the tube connecting them. It was late at night, a
small lamp by his bedside offering the only illumination in the room. The weak
light flickered over a face in mild distress, exhausted and in pain.
With her free hand, Leyas reached out and
traced the wrinkles on his face. It had been fifteen years since they met.
Leyas gave a wry smile. Time really seemed to have gotten away from her.
“Looks like time has gotten to both of us...”
she whispered affectionately, though there was still no sign of her husband
waking to hear her.
Her fingers ran down his cold cheek over and
over, as if hoping she could impart some warmth by doing this. Lying at his
side, she shuffled a bit to get closer to his enormous frame.
“Who would have ever thought things would end
up this way?”
With no one to hear them, her whispers sounded
hollow. Forcing another smile, Leyas closed her eyes.
Just a little more...
As she counted the rhythm of his heartbeat,
she thought back to the past.
The sacred mountain of Trandius, where the
People of the Forest made their home, had long, harsh winters. The short summer
and fruitful autumn were important times to prepare for the difficult winter to
come.
That day, Leyas was near the coast, looking
for food they could preserve for the winter months. While her brother Ryne and
their friends were net fishing, Leyas, who wasn’t particularly good at
swimming, was on the beach collecting seaweed. Two days prior, there had been a
terrible storm, which had kicked quite a bit of seaweed onto the shore. Among
all the seaweed were also large planks of wood and wooden boxes. Leyas and her
people accepted this good fortune as gifts from nature.
But as Leyas searched, her breath caught when
she found a person lying among the driftwood. She hurried to his side and
discovered he was a young man.
“Hey, are you okay?!” Without thinking she
shook the collapsed man, who gave a weak groan as his eyes fluttered open.
Oh...they’re the same color as the summer sky.
That brilliant, clear blue was Leyas’s
favorite. She sat frozen, only able to stare into those eyes. In that brief
instant, she felt something change inside her.
It truly was brief, as the man’s eyes quickly
shut again. With those stunning blue eyes hidden once again, Leyas came back to
her senses. She immediately reached for his neck, checking his pulse. For some
reason she hesitated to try speaking to the man again, instead turning to call
for her brother’s help after confirming his pulse was still there.
An unconscious person was very hard to move,
and on top of that, he was much bigger than Leyas was. She had no illusions of
being able to move him herself.
When his sister came running back, Ryne, the
leader of the group, immediately sent their friends back to call for the adults
to bring a stretcher. Meanwhile, he and Leyas grabbed the towels originally
meant for drying themselves after fishing, and they dashed back to the fallen
man.
In the end, he wasn’t badly injured. He had a
wound on his head that needed four stitches, but there was no damage to the
bone. Besides that, he had only superficial cuts and scrapes. The People of the
Forest concluded that he had lost consciousness due to dehydration and
hypothermia from drifting in the sea for so long. The adults insisted he would
be fine if they warmed him up, and as they said, he woke up half a day later.
He had forgotten everything about himself. All
he had was his clothing—simple, yet made from high-quality fabric. He
remembered what he needed to make it through daily life, but he had completely
forgotten everything else about himself. He didn’t know his name, his family,
or why he’d been adrift at sea.
“Systematized amnesia,” they called his
condition. In response to excessive stress, memories relating to a specific
subject or category were forgotten. Unfortunately for this poor man, it seemed
to have affected everything about himself.
Calling him Deel, from the initials found on a
handkerchief he had in his pocket, Leyas and her brother invited him to stay at
their house. Leyas’s father had passed away the year before, so they had a
spare room, but mostly it was because Leyas had been the one to discover him.
She felt a strange sense of responsibility for the man.
Though he clearly wasn’t happy about it, Ryne
offered no objections, and so with a little embarrassment at his own
helplessness, Deel came to live together with them.
The new arrival proved to be quite capable.
With no serious injuries, his greatest problems were hypothermia and general
weakness. His robust, fit body recovered in no time. As soon as he was healthy
again, he began helping Leyas around the house, not wishing to lie around
uselessly. He was perfectly competent when it came to both cleaning the rooms
and making arrangements for cooking. Once he had recovered fully, he even began
repairing the broken fence around their garden and the rain shutters on their
windows.
“You’re amazing! You can really do anything!”
Leyas exclaimed. Since Ryne had no skill at all in these things, she had given
up on them as unfixable.
“It’s not that big a deal. You can tell it’s
amateur work.” Deel could only scratch his head in embarrassment as her eyes
sparkled at his every accomplishment. He had only wanted to give something back
to the siblings who had taken him in when he lost his memories. He hadn’t
expected to get such a joyful response.
“That’s not true at all! When my brother tried
before, forget covering up the holes in the rain shutter, he just made them
larger!”
“I guess we all have our strengths and
weaknesses.” Ryne shrugged at his sister’s teasing.
As the two shared a laugh, Deel found himself
joining in despite himself.
“Hey! That’s the first time I’ve seen you
smile, Deel! You should do it more often!” The sight had taken Leyas aback, but
there was joy in her voice.
He hadn’t even realized he was smiling. Or
rather, he realized he hadn’t smiled at all before this. That discovery was
quite a surprise to him, but a happy one for some reason. Although he had no
idea who he was, he didn’t have a penny to his name, and everything seemed to
be going wrong for him, he felt bright and cheerful.
“If this is all it takes to make you happy,
then I’ll gladly do whatever you ask.” Maybe that was why those words escaped
his lips before he had even considered their gravitas.
But before he could take them back, a neighbor
came calling for help. In no time at all, Deel had become the village’s
handyman. Repairing homes, felling problematic trees, even maintaining the
roads—he did anything he was asked without a word of complaint. For the many
academic types in the village, someone willing to help out with the manual
labor was a godsend. He would wake up at sunrise and water the garden, eat the
breakfast Leyas had made together with everyone, then head out the door to
start taking care of the work asked of him. If he had nothing to do, Leyas
would invite him to help gather food for the winter. She taught him which
plants were edible as she harvested them, and he brought an axe to collect
firewood from fallen trees they came across. Then, exhausted from a long day of
hard work, they’d come home and bathe, gather around the dinner table, and
share stories of the day. When the sun set, they’d head to bed.
It was a simple but fulfilling life, one that
gradually drew Deel and Leyas closer. Deel would pick a flower from a high
branch and put it in her hair, and Leyas would blush with a happy thank you. It
was so pure and innocent that it was honestly a bit embarrassing for those
around them. It would make others cringe, then strangely make them feel
depressed as they reflected over their own reactions. For better or for worse,
the two at the center of it all seemed oblivious to the phenomenon they had
created. Eventually Ryne and the other villagers accepted that they would find
happiness together in their own time and watched the relationship blossom with
warm smiles.
It was a small, secluded village, but there
were a surprising number of people who had spouses from the outside world. With
so few people living in this village on Mt. Trandius, it was an important
measure to prevent issues from inbreeding. In order to keep their secrets from
leaking to the outside world, they generally required newcomers to cut all ties
with their old lives.
In that respect, an amnesiac like Deel was
perfect. He had no ties to cut in the first place. Everyone looked forward to
the day he would become an official member of their village.
But that happy time was not to last. The first
sign of the end was a letter from the Alliance. A visitor from afar had been
lost at sea on their journey to the area. He was a man about nineteen years
old, with blond hair and blue eyes. He was about 180 centimeters tall—neither
tall nor particularly short—had a refined body and a handsome face. It sounded
far too familiar to be a coincidence, so the village chief brought it to Ryne.
“We can hardly hide his past from him just
because it’s convenient for us.” With only a brief moment of hesitation, Ryne
quickly made up his mind and recommended they talk to Deel and Leyas about it.
The two were similarly conflicted. Their lives
had been so happy and peaceful, and Deel had forgotten everything about his
past life. However, he could guess from his attire when he had been found that
he had lived a reasonably well-off life before.
“We haven’t responded yet. What do you want to
do?”
With how much their village restricted access
to the outside world, it had taken two months for the letter to reach them. If
they simply responded that they knew nothing, he would be able to continue his
life hidden here. But surprisingly enough, it was Leyas who pushed him in a
direction.
“If someone is looking for you, you should
meet them,” she said, smiling despite her face being visibly pale.
“But...” Even if someone was looking for him,
the first people he remembered were Leyas and the other villagers. His memories
returning now might be no more than a hindrance to him, nor did he have any
idea what kind of life he’d be going back to. As he found himself at a loss for
words, Leyas squeezed his hand.
“If you meet them and don’t like what you
find, you can always come back. And if you can’t come back, I’ll go and find
you.”
Deel’s eyes went wide with astonishment. But
before he could express his shock, Ryne at their side burst out laughing.
“Oh, come on, Ley! What are you, a prince
going to rescue a captive princess?!” His laughter shattered the tense
atmosphere. Leyas smacked his shoulders in retaliation for his teasing.
“You mean...I can come back?” Deel murmured,
still in shock.
“Of course. We’re family, aren’t we?” Leyas
replied, almost confused, before Ryne started to smirk.
“Are you sure you want to include me in that?”
“Give it a rest!” Leyas’s face flushed as she
lifted her hand to hit her brother again, but before she could, she found
herself wrapped tight in Deel’s arms.
“I’ll come back—because this is where I
belong. I love you, Ley.”
Her face burned an even deeper red, but held
tight in his arms as she was, she responded by wrapping her arms around him.
“Me too. I love you, Deel.”
And so Deel left the village, a number of
adults going with him. It was against the rules for strangers to enter the
village, so the People of the Forest had to leave whenever they met with
visitors. And having not yet reached adulthood, Leyas was forbidden from
leaving the village.
“I’ll keep an eye on him for you,” Ryne said,
forcing himself into the group accompanying Deel, leaving Leyas to worry at
home alone.
A month later, Deel returned. Or rather, the
man they’d known as Deel.
Upon meeting the entourage from the Ourenge
Alliance, Deel collapsed with a terrible headache. When he awoke, his memories
slowly began to return.
“I never would have guessed he was a
prince...”
The truth had been quite a shock. From his
clothing, Leyas and the others had surmised he was from a rather affluent
family, but he was actually a prince from the Kingdom of Bluheitz. After
graduating from the academy, he had been sent to travel the world to broaden
his knowledge, but he’d been shipwrecked along the way.
“I couldn’t bear leaving without saying thank
you to the village that saved my life,” he said on his return, beautiful in his
fancy, noble clothing. But to Leyas, he seemed so incredibly distant now.
Unable to stand this change in him, Leyas
slipped out from the group that had gone to see him and ran away. Normally a
child wouldn’t be allowed to see visitors from outside the village at all, but
Leyas’s coming of age ceremony was only a month away, and she had already spent
months living with him as family, so an exception had been made for her.
It’d been easy enough to hide behind the
others and find somewhere else to clear her head. Knowing if she headed back to
the village someone would come to drag her back out, she instead headed to a
spring deep in the forest.
“So you weren’t a captive princess, but a
prince...” Leyas gave a self-deprecating smile. “I can’t go find you now.
You’re too far away...”
Seeing Deel in his bright and flashy clothes,
smiling and surrounded by everybody, she thought he looked entirely different
from the man who’d slipped flowers into her hair. Tears started pouring down
her cheeks.
“And here I thought you were going to come
kidnap me.”
Leyas’s breath caught as she spun at the voice
behind her—Deel. His flashy clothes were gone, replaced by a plain white shirt.
Apparently, he would be staying at the village for a time before departing.
“Why...?”
“You weren’t at home, so I figured you’d be
here. You told me this was where you would run if something happened,
remember?” Deel replied, a bit perplexed by her trembling voice.
“I heard your memories came back.”
“Yes. But I remember everything that happened
here too.” Ruffling his perfectly trimmed bangs, he walked toward her.
“I heard you’re a real prince.”
He paused. “Yeah, I am.” As he drew closer,
Leyas slowly stepped back. As if running away. As if afraid of being caught.
“I thought you’d never come back.”
“But I did. I promised you, didn’t I?” Deel
stopped, saving Leyas from having to retreat into the spring itself.
As they stared at each other, another tear
traced its way down her cheek.
“I came back, but I’ll be leaving again. Once
my memories returned, I remembered my responsibilities too. I can’t throw that
all away.” Deel’s brow furrowed, reminding Leyas of the faint wrinkle in his
brow when she had first seen him.
Did he used to make a face like this?
From the time he had awoken with no memories,
Deel’s brow had contained no trace of a wrinkle, so she had completely
forgotten about it. Caught up in the strangeness of it all, Leyas found herself
reaching forward to touch it. Before she realized it, she was massaging his
brow, as if she could massage that wrinkle away. Staring at her in shock,
Deel’s face finally broke into a smile.
He grabbed her hand and pulled it close to his
cheek. “I love you, Ley. Even with my past memories back, that hasn’t changed.”
He stepped a little closer, putting a hand to her cheek as another tear ran
down it. His attempts at consoling her hurt her all the more.
He’s older than me, but he’s still barely an
adult. What kind of life did he live to have this kind of wrinkle in his brow
already?
“I can’t stay here. Please...would you come
with me? I know it’s asking a lot of you...but I want to be with you.”
Leyas took a deep breath at that pleading
whisper. In one month she’d have her coming of age ceremony, and she’d be
allowed to leave the village. She would be able to take her first steps as an
apothecary traveling around the world to help people, her childhood dream come
true. She had worked so hard all her life for this. There was more research she
wanted to do, so many more things she wanted to learn.
But I’d have to throw that all away.
That’s what it meant to marry someone outside
of the tribe. She would never be able to return to the village. She would see
neither her friends nor her brother, her only remaining blood relative.
What do I really want?
Whenever she found herself at a loss, that was
what she asked herself. It was something her mother had taught her when she was
little. No matter how difficult the problem, she could always find the answer
within.
Leyas stared deep into Deel’s eyes, those twin
orbs reflecting the summer sky she loved so much.
Maybe I’ve been his ever
since I saw those eyes, she thought with a bright
smile as tears continued to pour down.
“I love you, Deel. Could you tell me your real
name?”
Coming back to the present, Leyas snapped a
hand to the tube connecting her to her husband. She had been lost in the past
for longer than she’d realized. She quickly removed the needle and pressed a
cloth to the small hole left by the needle. Standing up to start cleaning, she
was hit by a dizzy spell and forced back down into a chair.
Looks like I gave him too much.
She grinned sheepishly, thinking of how her
brother would scold her for making such a sloppy mistake. And if her husband
learned she had risked her own health to help him...
“You’d probably be mad too, right, Deeno?”
After tracing that deep wrinkle on his brow
one more time, Leyas got to her feet again and started cleaning up.
“Misha will see right through me if I go to
her in this state. I should make some nutritional supplements. Oh, and medicine
to stimulate blood production. I guess I’ll need to get a good meal, as well.”
She stepped out of the room, murmuring to
herself all the while.
And as she closed the door behind her,
Deenoark’s fingers twitched.
Chapter 7: Sudden Tragedy
“Hey, you! You’re the daughter of that forest
witch, right?”
Misha turned at the sudden voice behind her.
Standing there was a boy with light brown hair, glaring at her with an imposing
stance.
“Forest witch”—she had learned that phrase
over the past two days and that it referred to her mother, though this was the
first time the name had carried so much hostility.
“Lady Rosmaria’s eldest son, Lord Hydgene,”
whispered the maid guiding Misha between rooms. Lady Rosmaria was her father’s
official wife, who Misha had yet to meet, which meant this boy was her half
brother.
Misha found herself studying the boy. Light
brown hair and blue eyes. If it hadn’t been for his glare and scowl, he’d
probably have been a fairly cute boy.
I guess he’s a bit younger
than me? she thought to herself as his scowl
deepened. He probably didn’t like the way she was looking at him.
“I don’t accept either of you! If anything
happens to my father, I’m having you both executed!” he shouted before turning
and running away, leaving Misha perplexed.
“What was that about?” Misha muttered to
herself, prompting an apology from the maid.
“He is normally such a bright and gentle boy.
Right now, I believe he is under quite a bit of stress. Please...” Misha shook
her head as the maid tried to cover for the boy.
“Don’t worry about it. I guess I’d be lying if
I said it didn’t bother me...but I’ll try not to let it. I don’t really know
what he was trying to say anyway.” Misha smiled, doing her best to ignore the
gloom building in her chest.
Despite it having been their first meeting, it
seemed her half brother already hated her and her mother, and she had no idea
why. Her first instinct was that his hatred stemmed from her mother being a
concubine to his father, but Misha recalled reading somewhere that it was
standard practice for nobility to have multiple wives in this kingdom. In other
words, a duke having two wives was nothing to be upset over.
Especially since one of them lived in a
distant forest, secluded from the rest of the world.
Okay, that actually does annoy me. We’re here to
try and save my father and his knights. Why is he talking about executing us?
Lost in thought, Misha didn’t realize her
expression was growing steadily more severe, which had the maid at her side
growing nervous.
She didn’t see the look of relief on the
maid’s face either when Kite came across them standing still in the hallway.
“What are you standing around here for?”
“Oh, Mr. Kite.” Misha blinked in surprise,
finally realizing the knight was standing right beside her.
“Weren’t you going to see your father? It’s
been two days since you last saw him, right?”
At Kite’s prodding, Misha snapped back to
reality. Between caring for the already present wounded and looking after the
others being brought in from the battlefield every day, Misha hadn’t had the
chance to see her own mother, who she was supposed to be sharing a room with,
let alone her bedridden father. Just earlier, while eating lunch, the maid had
said she could go see him “if they had time,” so she was supposed to be
hurrying there.
“We had a bit of a strange encounter...” She
wasn’t quite sure how to describe what had happened, so she kept it vague while
she gave a weak smile. “Sorry for making you wait. Please lead on.”
Ignoring the strange look that she got from
Kite, she gave a small bow to the maid standing at their side.
When they made it to her father’s room, she
could hardly believe how much better he looked than when she last saw him. He
had yet to wake up, but his wounds were slowly starting to heal. His fingers
were warm, and his pulse was strong and steady.
Looks like mom’s treatment went well.
Misha sighed in relief. They had probably made
it past the biggest hurdle. If nothing else out of the ordinary happened, she
expected him to make a full recovery.
“Where is my mother?” In her relief, she
finally noticed her absence. Her not being here was strange.
However, the maid waiting in the room
explained that her mother had gone to collect some herbs she was running low
on. Back when her mother had lived in this mansion, she had kept a small herb
garden, which had been left to grow wild with her departure.
Their timing had been bad, that’s all. Misha
wanted to believe that...but something didn’t feel right.
Normally she would have called for me and asked
me to get them. It’s like she’s avoiding me.
And once that thought occurred to her, she
started to grow anxious. Her father’s complexion had improved significantly.
His pulse was strong. And her mother was avoiding her. Misha could only think
of one thing that would connect those dots.
“I’m off to go see her.” With that declaration
as she made her way out, Misha ignored the voices calling her to stop.
Misha had been following basically the same
route every time she walked through the mansion, but even a building this grand
would be nothing when compared to navigating a wild forest with no landmarks.
She had a pretty good sense of the layout of the mansion by now anyway.
Picking up on the shortest route to the inner
courtyard, she found herself almost running by the time she heard a
high-pitched voice. At the end of the hallway, in front of a descending
staircase, her mother was talking with a group of other women. As her mother
stood there receiving her scolding, it was clear even through her makeup that
she was quite pale.
As Misha had guessed, she must have given
blood to her father a number of times now. She could only guess how much blood
she had given, but judging by her mother’s complexion, she was suffering from a
rather serious case of anemia.
“Just go back to your forest! Father won’t
wake up with you here anyway! You’re just a nuisance!” the girl at the head of
the pack shouted. Judging by their outfits, the others with her were her maids.
Standing in front of them, Leyas could only stare silently at her feet. To
Misha, it looked like the standard distress of someone suffering from anemia,
but the angry girl must have taken it as Leyas ignoring her.
“Say something!” With another shout, she
pushed Leyas.
Someone screamed.
The small push threw Leyas off-balance,
sending her staggering backward.
“Mom!!!”
Time felt like it slowed to a crawl as Misha
watched her mother disappear over the edge of the stairs. Leyas’s hands reached
desperately forward, only to catch nothing but air. As she looked around in
shock, her eyes happened over Misha.
Multiple screams filled the air as Misha
dashed past the gaggle of women and ran down the stairs. As she made it to the
bottom, despair rooted her in place.
“M-Mom...”
Leyas’s eyes were closed. A thin line of red
dripped from the corner of her mouth...her neck bent at an impossible angle.
She must have fallen directly on her head, and hard.
Losing all strength in her legs, Misha dropped
to the floor. It was obvious at a glance that her mother wasn’t breathing, but
even so, Misha’s hands moved on their own to check. She felt no air moving on
her fingertips. Mechanically, her hand continued to reach for her mother’s neck
but found no pulse there either.
No matter how much knowledge she had as an
apothecary, there was no saving someone with a broken neck who wasn’t
breathing. Even if her body was still warm...there was no denying that Leyas
was dead.
That reality smashed Misha’s heart to pieces.
“What happened?!”
“What was that sound?!”
Hearing the commotion, people began to gather
at both the top and bottom of the stairs.
At the top was a young girl bawling her eyes
out, her two maids holding her tight as if to protect her. At the bottom, a
young girl sat frozen beside her dead mother. That juxtaposition, of motion and
stillness, of life and death, could only be described as cruel.
“Misha, what happened?!” Among the gathering
crowd, Kite dashed forward and grabbed Misha by the shoulders.
“No...” Eyes still locked on her mother, Misha
started to shake her head.
“Misha?”
She exploded in a scream, unable—unwilling—to
accept what she saw in front of her.
“Nooooo!!!”
Her voice was a knife to the heart of everyone
standing there. Even the girl wailing at the top of the stairs fell silent.
Everything else stopped, all other sounds drowned out, overpowered by that
bloodcurdling cry.
Leyas was laid on a bed, Misha sitting on a
chair at her side, her eyes locked on her mother. With the blood wiped from her
mouth and her neck moved back to a more natural angle, it looked like she was
just sleeping, but Misha’s eyes rejected that enticing illusion. Her experience
told her better.
Her mother’s skin was too pale. Her chest had
lost the steady rise and fall of breathing. Every little detail declared that
Leyas’s life had come to an end.
Why... Why...?
The question repeated endlessly in Misha’s
head as she stared at that pair of eyes that would never open again.
If only they hadn’t been standing at the top
of the stairs.
If only she hadn’t been unsteady from the
anemia.
If only her leg hadn’t been injured in the
first place.
If only she had never tried the treatment of
sharing her blood.
If only... If only Misha had been with her...
So many ifs filled
her mind, rushing to the surface and dissipating in futility. There was no
point dwelling on any of that now. There was no going back now.
Because...mom is dead.
Tears poured down her face. Somewhere deep
inside, a part of her found it strange that there were still tears left after
all the crying she had done.
How long had she been sitting here? She didn’t
know. Was it an hour? Half a day? Ever since she saw her mother fall, she
hadn’t been able to feel time passing.
“Lady Misha, please at least have something to
drink. You’re going to dry up.”
The same older maid that had been at her side
since the day she arrived at this mansion pushed a glass in front of her.
Almost unconsciously, Misha grabbed the glass
and lifted it to her lips. The faint sweetness, the scent of mint, glided
easily down her desperately dry throat.
“It’s...really good. Thank you.” Though it was
no more than a murmur, her voice echoed loud in the otherwise silent room.
“That’s quite a thing to say in a situation like this, huh?”
“Life has to go on.” Misha’s eyes finally left
her mother as she lifted her head in surprise at the reply that came to her
idle muttering. The maid in her usual attire stood beside her, eyes downcast.
“No matter how difficult the days that come, we have to walk through them.
That’s what it means to live.”
“To live...?” The maid’s words slowly soaked
their way into Misha’s head.
“That’s right.”
That one word landed hard. Dropping her head,
Misha closed her eyes tight. “Can... Can I have some more to drink? Something
warm?”
The maid nodded wordlessly as she turned and
stepped out of the room. Once she left, Misha turned her eyes back on the bed.
“I’ll... I’ll live. I’ll do that for
you...mom...”
Just as Misha finished the cup of tea the maid
brought back for her, word of her father’s awakening arrived.
He had been standing in total darkness.
Where...am I? Why am I here? I don’t remember
anything.
He couldn’t even tell if he was actually
standing up or lying down. He had the sense of losing sight of himself. The
only thing he knew for sure was that he was freezing.
Why is it so cold? That’s strange...
Rubbing himself all over, he sluggishly looked
around to finally see a small light in the distance. Tiny, but steady and
bright, like it was calling him. His feet naturally started carrying him toward
it.
Ah. I’m supposed to go there.
Though his legs moved of their own accord, he
didn’t think to resist them. It had to be warmer over there. That was why there
was such a gentle light.
But as he began to approach the light, he felt
a jolt in his chest. Warmth surged through his frozen body.
Ba-dmp. Ba-dmp. Ba-dmp...
He felt a pulse, like someone else’s heart
beating in rhythm with his own. As warmth seeped out from his core into the
rest of his body, his mind finally began to clear.
Oh. I was wounded in battle...so why am I here?
Where am I?
Everywhere he looked, he saw only darkness.
The only exception was that faint, distant light. It shone warm and inviting,
with the promise of peace, but every instinct in him told him to run. He knew
if he went there, he’d never see the people he loved again.
But then where do I go?
As he stood still, lost in indecision, a quiet
whisper entered his ear, the voice of the most precious person in his life. So
with no other clues to go on, he closed his eyes and started walking toward
that voice.
Toward that worried, anxious voice.
He forced his leaden feet to move, desperately
chasing after that voice.
It’s okay. I’m coming back. Don’t worry, Leyas.
Chapter 8: What Was Lost, and What Remains
Though he had regained consciousness, Misha’s
father’s mind was still in a haze. He couldn’t speak, only able to respond to a
few questions by blinking or squeezing his hand, then he would pass out from
exhaustion again.
Even so, Misha could see that was a clear sign
of recovery. He had remembered his own name and recognized Misha, so there
didn’t seem to be any serious level of brain damage. Once Misha said as much,
the servant watching over him teared up in relief.
After checking on the wound again and
replacing his bandages, Misha took her leave. She needed to resupply on salves,
and above all, she wanted to spend as little time away from her mother as
possible.
As she hurried down the halls, a woman
approached from the other direction. She seemed to be about the same age as
Misha’s mother, and she was wearing a rather fancy dress. Even without anyone
to tell her, Misha immediately knew who she was.
That’s Lady Rosmaria.
Her light brown hair matched that of the boy
who’d suddenly accosted her the other day. Her eyes were a bit lighter, so the
boy must have taken after his father in that regard. Out of instinct, Misha
stepped aside to let her pass. Rosmaria shot her a glance as she stepped by but
said nothing.
Misha breathed a sigh of relief. She had no
idea how she’d respond if Rosmaria tried to speak to her. Her daughter had
effectively killed Misha’s mother. It hadn’t been intentional—really, it had
been the result of multiple unfortunate coincidences—but there was no denying
who’d pushed that last piece into place. There was no way Misha could bring
herself to forgive the girl.
At least, not right now. I don’t even want to
hear her voice, let alone see her face.
Biting her lip, she forced her feet to start
moving again. It wasn’t easy to keep the tears from pouring out again, but she
didn’t want to be caught crying where everyone could see her.
In the end, no one could tell the duke in his
current state what had happened to Leyas, so they quietly had her body interred
in the mansion’s own cemetery. The funeral was a sad affair, attended by almost
no one. Misha really wanted to bring her back to the woods, but with her
father’s condition still unstable, she couldn’t afford to leave him for that
long. That’s why, as small a gesture as it was, she had to be content with
keeping a lock of her mother’s hair, the same shining gold as her own, wrapped
in paper in a small hidden drawer in her medicine kit, to take back later.
At the funeral, her grandfather had given her
a big hug, saying, “I’m so sorry.” Misha decided then that would be the last
time she cried over her mother. If she sat around weeping all the time, her
mother would worry.
Luckily, there was no shortage of things to
keep her occupied. From sunrise to sundown, she darted around nonstop, caring
for the wounded. By the time she made it to bed, she passed out the moment she
put her head down. She genuinely didn’t have the time to dwell on her mother’s
death. She knew this was a kind of escapism, but she had no other way to cope.
All she could do was pretend she didn’t notice the concern in the eyes of
everyone watching her. By doing that, she could at least keep putting one foot in
front of the other.
This way I’ll start feeling better little by
little. Eventually, things will be back to normal, she told herself.
However, that was no more than hiding a wound
that never healed. She knew full well it needed to be properly cleaned and
treated, but she had no idea where to even begin.
The days continued to pass by. Around the time
Deenoark recovered enough to sit up in bed, the war came to an end. Misha
didn’t know the details, but it sounded like they had made an alliance with a
large country on the opposite side of their enemy, and that new support had
been enough to bring the fighting to an end. It was every bit a puppy howling
from the side of a wolf.
As expected, the relationship with their new
allies was anything but that of equals, their country effectively becoming a
vassal state of their new “friend,” but at the very least it was better than
being conquered by an enemy.
That was also when Misha’s father received the
belated news of Leyas’s death. He had started to suspect something was wrong
when he didn’t see her around, but he was devastated when he learned his own
daughter had been responsible for the accident.
“It’s like she died in my place,” he muttered
before going silent again. Misha couldn’t tell what he was thinking under that
silence, but the fact there was someone else grieving for her mother lifted her
spirits a bit.
Even in his weakened state, when Misha stood
close, her father grabbed her and pulled her into a tight hug. As thin and
feeble as he was, that warmth reminded her of her mother, and she broke her vow
to stop crying. This time, however, it felt different. The tears she cried in
her father’s arms felt somehow warmer, like they were starting to loosen
something that had turned stiff and rigid in her heart. It didn’t lessen her
anger and resentment at having her mother taken from her so meaninglessly, but
it did give her the courage to finally face that reality head-on. Admitting she
hated someone was as painful for her as accepting her mother’s death.
“Mom was really happy that we were able to
save you. Don’t be sad that you survived.” With his heart so broken, her father
was about to collapse all over again, so albeit through teary eyes, Misha had
to tell him that. She didn’t want her mother’s feelings to all be for nothing.
Most importantly, she couldn’t bear to lose any more family.
“That’s... Yeah. Yeah...” he murmured to
himself, eyes closed tight as tears began to well up. He mumbled over, and
over, and over.
The man stared hard into the darkness of his
room. Having barely overcome the struggle between life and death, his body
wasn’t yet able to move quite properly, something that greatly frustrated him.
Still, he knew trying to force it wouldn’t help.
Ley...what were you thinking in those last
moments? Did you hate me for being weak? Were you worried about our daughter? His mind wouldn’t stop
racing, as futile and hollow as it all seemed.
He remembered the day Leyas decided to live in
the forest, hiding her injured leg so she could protect the unborn child she
bore. He had been determined to divorce Rosmaria at that point, but Leyas had
stopped him. She understood what it meant to love someone so much you wanted
them for yourself.
“I never could get used to living in the city
anyway. Living in the forest will be more my speed. I can’t support you in your
work as duke anyway, and I’m the one who butted in where I don’t belong.
Besides, I’ll have our child with me, so I won’t be lonely,” she said with a
smile, putting a hand to her barely swollen belly.
It still felt like that had all happened
yesterday.
Life had been peaceful afterward—at least on
the surface. With Leyas gone, Rosmaria seemed to calm down, fulfilling her role
as duchess splendidly. While he was traveling around managing distant affairs,
she seemed to be doing a great job handling the household affairs and raising
their children. Although it wasn’t the same as his feelings for Leyas, he did
have a deep affection for Rosmaria, and he truly saw her as his partner. He’d
thought she understood that.
Without realizing it, he bit through his lip,
and it started to bleed.
He couldn’t find it in his heart to forgive
her. Maybe it was all an imagined betrayal on his part. He was sure Rosmaria
would have her excuses, but he didn’t want to hear them. He had overlooked her
behavior once before, and what had he gained for it? Loss and despair. He
didn’t want to make the same mistake again. There was still someone he needed
to protect.
Now isn’t the time for that, though.
It was difficult to give orders without being
able to move freely, so his first order of business was returning to perfect
health. He made this resolution to himself as he licked the blood from his
lips. He wouldn’t waste the life his greatest love had sacrificed herself for.
“I never should have come back...” he muttered
into the lonely darkness.
Misha’s father slowly recovered. The other
wounded returned to good health, no longer needing Misha’s instructions to take
care of themselves. With the war over, the actual doctor (the previous doctor’s
assistant) had returned, and once she handed things over to him, there wasn’t
all that much for Misha to do anymore.
What should I do, then...?
Having finished catching the doctor up to
speed, Misha found herself staring out the window of her room.
I could go back to the forest...
She had the skills needed to survive in those
deep woods alone, and if she asked, she could probably get her father to send
her supplies from time to time. She could make medicine for him in return so
that she didn’t need to worry about feeling like a mooch. She definitely
thought she’d feel more at home there. Something still nagged at her, though.
What’s the point in holing up in the forest by
myself?
Before, she’d had her mother there, and her
father would regularly visit, so she’d never had to worry about being lonely.
But her mother was gone now, and Misha found it hard to believe her father
would visit like he used to—especially because it would be a long time before
he was healthy enough to ride a horse again. If he did his best, he could
probably recover enough that daily life would present no issues for him, but
the hard running and physical work he used to do would still be very painful.
I don’t mind staying until
he’s recovered a bit more, but I don’t really want to stay here forever... she thought, looking up at the sky. Things had calmed down quite a bit,
but the loss of her mother still stung Misha, and it didn’t seem people here
appreciated having her around much either. The girl responsible had locked
herself in her room after the accident and had yet to emerge.
A thought suddenly occurred to Misha.
“I wonder where my uncle is now.”
He was always wandering the world, following
his curiosity, and would occasionally drop by their forest to visit. He didn’t
have a set schedule by any means, but Misha would guess he generally showed up
once every year and a half to two years.
“His last visit was just after I turned
eleven...so he should be back soon, right?”
He was very talented among his people, and
just as strange, but seemed to have a soft spot for Misha.
“I wonder if he’d let me travel with him.”
Losing her mother meant losing her teacher,
but her time at the mansion had taught her just how much more she had to learn
about being an apothecary. The idea of learning through hands-on experience
while traveling around with her uncle was quite attractive. If possible, she’d
also like to visit the forest where her mother grew up. Maybe he could take her
there. Despite never saying as much, Misha’s mother had longed for her old
home—Misha was certain of this.
“For now, I guess I should go back to the
forest and wait for my uncle to visit. Then I’ll ask him to take me with him.
If he refuses...I’ll worry about that then.”
With her mind made up, her hesitation
evaporated. She immediately stood up and started toward her father’s room. She
needed to start making preparations immediately.
Hoping to speak with her father, she arrived
at his room to find a rather unhappy crowd. He had barely recovered enough to
be sitting up in bed, surrounded by his close associates, his own father, and
even Rosmaria for once.
“Why not give them this girl? She might have
been born from a concubine, but she is still the daughter of a duke,” Rosmaria
said, her voice cold as she turned a sharp gaze on Misha, who could only blink
in confusion.
The coldness in her voice was nothing compared
to that in her father’s reply, though. “Ah, so now you
think of her as my daughter. How convenient.” Even though it wasn’t aimed at
her, Misha couldn’t help but flinch back at hearing it. “You’re the one who
said you didn’t want some stranger’s blood mixed in with our family. That’s why
Misha hasn’t made her debut yet, even though she’s already thirteen.”
Rosmaria faltered under her husband’s glare.
She wasn’t used to this kind of intensity from him, despite their years of
marriage. His cold, freezing demeanor made her feel like a total stranger.
“Not that it was much of an issue, since her
mother wanted to keep Misha out of the spotlight too. Either way, that means
she’s not a viable option for this.” Her father shrugged, looking around at the
people gathered. “We can’t marry off a daughter that has never appeared in the
social scene before. We’ll send Lyla, as originally planned.”
“She’s only fourteen!” Rosmaria all but
screamed, barely letting her husband finish speaking.
“Misha is thirteen,” he replied curtly.
“Lyla is still bedridden from shock!”
“Misha just lost her mother to that same accident. So?”
Misha’s father bringing up the “accident” that
everyone else had tacitly refused to speak of stopped Rosmaria in her tracks,
who brought her fan up to cover her face in silence.
He continued. “Never mind just being the
daughter of a duke, she’s a representative of our country. It’s an honor, isn’t
it? If she’s lucky, she could even find herself the mother of the next king.”
Rosmaria couldn’t stop her tears from her
husband’s sarcastic remark, wordlessly turning and leaving the room, followed
out by numerous servants. They were all employed by Rosmaria’s own family, so
they were likely off to begin planning for this new development as quickly as
possible.
With them gone, Misha’s father heaved a sigh,
leaning back into the cushions.
“Dad?” Misha said, stepping close to the bed.
Though she still didn’t know what they had been talking about, she could guess
the conversation had involved her.
Her father opened his eyes, turning a tired
smile on her. “Don’t make that face. It’s not a big deal. You don’t need to
worry about it.”
“But...” All this talk of “representative of
the country” and “mother of the king,” together with Rosmaria’s odd behavior,
had Misha concerned.
“The country we have made an alliance with is
asking for a daughter to marry into their family. But the royal family has no
daughters of marriageable age, so the request came down to us. Even if I
married into Rosmaria’s family, I am still the younger brother of the current
king by birth,” he explained, seeing Misha wouldn’t let it rest.
Misha’s frown deepened. The alliance that he’d
mentioned was in name only. In reality, they had become a vassal state for
another, so sending a daughter was more akin to giving them a hostage.
Furthermore, because Lyla wasn’t a member of the actual royal family, the
chances of her being cut off eventually were quite high. There was no parent
who would want to send their child into a situation like that.
That doesn’t really make me want to take her
place, though...
Lyla was the girl who had been shouting at
Leyas right at the end. Being fourteen years old, she looked grown enough, but
her behavior showed she was still quite immature. She had likely been raised
like a spoiled princess by her mother and servants. A girl like that being sent
off as a hostage to a foreign nation seemed quite unlikely to find any
happiness there.
“You don’t have to worry about it, Misha. She
has lived her life in luxury thanks to the grace of the kingdom and the
dukedom. This is no more than her duty as a member of the nobility.”
Misha didn’t have anything she could say to
that. “I wanted to talk to you because I plan on going back to the forest
soon,” she murmured instead, remembering why she was here in the first place.
That was news that would have made anyone on Rosmaria’s side rejoice moments
ago, but now it sounded like she was running away, so it left a bit of a bad
taste in her mouth.
“You’re going to live out there on your own?
Won’t you get lonely? You can stay here if you want.”
“That’s where my home is. I’m worried about it
since we had to leave so suddenly,” Misha replied hesitantly in the face of her
father’s concern. “I might get lonely...but if that happens, I’ll come visit
you.”
Honestly speaking, Misha wanted to stay at the
mansion a little longer to watch over her father’s recovery, but she was
starting to realize that staying any longer put her at risk of getting wrapped
up in something bigger. Her father and grandfather might have had no plans to
marry Misha off, but she all but expected Rosmaria to try and pull something.
Her father likely had similar concerns. Maybe
if he had been in good health, he could have protected her, but in his current
state, he couldn’t even get out of bed without help.
After staring for a while at the last living
reminder of Leyas, he sighed heavily. Those forest-jade eyes stared back at him
without a hint of doubt or hesitation.
“I’ll send a knight to take you back. If
anything happens... No, even if nothing happens, please write to me from time
to time. I’ll get better as soon as I can so I can come visit you.”
“Okay. I promise.” Misha smiled.
“No. I won’t accept this!” Rosmaria threw her
fan at the floor, having fled back to her own room.
She would never accept her precious daughter
being given away as a hostage to some foreign nation. Especially since the
foreign king in question spurned pomp and splendor, demanding her daughter be
sent with minimal servants and belongings. Her child, who had a bright future
ahead of her as the daughter of a duke, would never survive in such conditions.
That other girl’s face appeared in the back of
her mind again, the rude directness with which those bright green eyes stared
at her. She looked so much like her mother; Rosmaria couldn’t help but feel
disturbed by her very presence.
At the same time, she remembered the cold eyes
and words of her husband. He didn’t need to say it aloud. That one look had
already told her he would never forgive her.
That woman is still in the way even when she’s
dead.
From Rosmaria’s perspective, that woman’s
death had been nothing more than an unfortunate accident. Who would have
expected a little push from a fourteen-year-old girl would send someone
tumbling down a flight of stairs? And yet everyone treated her daughter as if
she had murdered the woman on purpose. The poor girl hadn’t been able to take a
step out of her bedroom for fear of those judging stares.
“Lyla’s just as much a victim here...”
But after seeing the look in her husband’s
eyes, she knew that there was no chance of convincing him of that.
“I can’t believe he’d send his own adorable
daughter off to die like this. He must have changed while he was on the verge
of dying.” Throwing herself on the couch as she lamented, one of her servants
stepped close.
“I have an idea, my lady,” the servant
whispered into Rosmaria’s ear. A guardian from her own family, he’d come with
her back when she’d married the duke. “It appears to me that there is no
changing the duke’s mind on this matter. I believe it would be more fruitful to
aim higher.”
“Higher?” Rosmaria tilted her head, her
servant dropping to a knee and bowing his head.
“There is no need for you to worry further. As
always, please leave everything to me. I promise I will save you from this
tragedy.”
Looking down at the servant, Rosmaria gave a
deep nod. “Right... Right. I can rest assured if you are taking care of it. You
have always been my greatest allies,” she said, looking to the man in front of
her and the servants waiting around her room. Her father had sent each of them
with her when she was married. They had never failed to support her.
“Please save my daughter.”
“As you command.” After another deep bow, the
man stood and left the room.
Chapter 9: A New Meeting
A few days had passed since Misha declared she
was returning to the forest, but she was still in the mansion. Either from all
the agitation or some kind of curse, her father’s fever had risen again and his
condition deteriorated further.
Two days of giving him medicine for the fever
and ensuring he was thoroughly hydrated got exactly the returns Misha had hoped
for, but as the fever subsided, his wound became inflamed again.
Seeing now that the wound was starting to
heal, Misha breathed a sigh of relief. It wasn’t festering anymore, and new
flesh was starting to grow. Her father had the refined body of a knight, so
once it set its mind to healing, it would recover relatively quickly. Cloths
pressed against the wound still came away wet, but the mixture of blood and
fluid was mostly transparent now, indicating the cells were quite active. It
wasn’t a bad sign in the least.
Would he heal faster if I stitched the wound? No,
that would cause more problems later. This should be better...
It was quite frustrating that she had no one
she could consult. Though she was knowledgeable enough, she didn’t have the
experience to know which was the best option for treatment.
Maybe I should have Kyne look for my uncle? The
bird’s met him before, and if it’s around the time he normally visits, he’s
probably in the area already.
But even if he was the only other person she
could think to consult, she eventually shook her head. There must have been
some reason her mother had cut ties with her home. She didn’t want to do
anything reckless until she figured out why that was.
Misha was also starting to realize her
knowledge and techniques were quite strange for this kingdom. She had tried
discussing her father’s condition with the doctor that had returned from the
battlefield, but they couldn’t really connect. He basically had no concept of
aftercare for an injury. For example, he’d say things, like “We saved his life,
but lingering effects are out of our control.” Another was “The injury will
make it impossible to walk; that’s just life.”
The wound on her father’s back had been quite
deep, but luckily, it seemed there wasn’t enough nerve damage to threaten any
sort of paralysis. His inability to walk right now was mostly due to muscle
atrophy from being bedridden for so long. If he didn’t start rebuilding those
muscles and practicing walking soon, he’d be crippled more permanently.
Misha had been shocked this was something she
needed to explain. It had been quite tough to make him understand.
Who really are the People of the Forest?
From her uncle, her impression of them was
that of free-spirited wanderers. He always had interesting and funny stories to
share, and would talk late into the night with her mother about new herbs he
had discovered. He was cheerful and easygoing. But when it came to medicine and
treatment, he was extremely serious. He was surprisingly stubborn, but also had
a keen interest in new things. The stories of his experiences were an important
part of Misha’s own base of knowledge.
On top of that, by piecing together the
tidbits of information she had gleaned from her mother, it seemed like the
People of the Forest were a group that lived secluded in the mountains,
studying medicine.
Does that mean my uncle traveling so much makes
him kind of a weirdo?
Comparing the image in her head of the People
of the Forest as something like hermits with the memories of her uncle almost
made Misha burst out laughing.
I’d love to visit them.
Her father had been saved by that mysterious
technique they’d developed. What was the secret of the blood? Even though
everyone had the same red blood, sometimes it acted as medicine and sometimes
as poison? Misha couldn’t help but be curious.
A secret village—Misha’s mother had grown up
there, where she learned an incredible amount about medicine and healing.
If I went there myself, would they teach me how
to treat even more injuries and diseases? Is there still a lot mom didn’t know?
With her own teacher gone, Misha began to
develop an admiration for the People of the Forest that had taught her mother.
Lost in thought, Misha’s hands worked on their
own, precisely handling her father’s injury. Just as she finished wrapping the
bandages around him, a flustered rapping on the door brought her back to
reality. As the maid in the corner of the room moved to answer, Misha slipped
off the bed and adjusted her somewhat disheveled clothing. Even though he could
move a little, it was still quite a task to wrap bandages around someone so
much larger than herself. It took Misha and two other servants helping to get the
job done.
“Deeno, there’s a letter for you from the
king. It seems to be urgent, as the messenger is waiting to take back a
response,” Misha’s grandfather said, his cane supporting him as he hobbled into
the room with a sealed letter.
Still lying on his side, her father took the
letter and opened it, his eyes gradually widening as he scanned it.
“What?! Why would I send them Misha?!” he
suddenly shouted, making Misha gulp.
Send me? To another country?
The conversation between her father and
Rosmaria immediately jumped to the forefront of her mind. Wasn’t her half
sister supposed to be the one going?
“We already told them we were sending Lyla.
Why would they ask for Misha?” Her grandfather seemed equally astonished by the
news.
“Apparently they learned Misha is trained as
an apothecary, and so they’ve taken an interest in her.” Her father frowned,
holding out the letter. As her grandfather took it to read for himself, this
time he started shouting in surprise.
“‘Come to the castle immediately’?! That’s
absurd!”
“No way! He absolutely can’t!” Misha cut in.
Although her father had significantly
improved, he still wasn’t in good enough condition to go anywhere. If he did,
it was clear his wound would open again. He was still too weak to even stand.
But as Misha was almost to tears, her
grandfather shook his head. “That’s not what I mean. They know full well Deeno
can’t go anywhere. That’s not what they’re asking. They are telling him to send
me and you back with the messenger.”
He then showed Misha the letter. It said that
a messenger had come from the other nation, saying they wished to meet the
apothecary from the People of the Forest. And if she was the real thing, they
demanded she be handed over to them.
“Isn’t this talking about mom?” Misha
murmured, earning a troubled nod from her grandfather.
“Most likely their information got confused.
They should already be aware that Leyas has passed.”
“I’m against it. I can’t send Misha somewhere
I don’t know she’ll be safe,” her father immediately declared, earning a frown
from her grandfather. Even if he was a prince, it wasn’t that easy to ignore
instructions from the king. Besides, this was a demand from their powerful new
“ally.” They didn’t have the luxury of refusing.
“Shouldn’t I go? If they want an apothecary
from the People of the Forest, they’ll probably give up when they see me and
learn that mom died, right?” Misha suggested, unable to bear the tension
starting to grow between the two men.
Misha didn’t know why the People of the Forest
were so important, but they must have been something special for a foreign king
to take such an interest in them.
And it was true enough that the gap in
knowledge between Misha and the doctor trained by this kingdom had been
bewildering, to say the least. It wasn’t hard to see why a leader of a great
nation would prize that.
Perhaps they saw Misha as a foothold for
getting access to the People of the Forest, but Misha didn’t actually know
anything about them. Her mother had taught her about medicine and medical care,
but all she knew about her mother’s hometown was that it was hidden deep in the
woods. Now that she thought about it, it was almost like her mother had gone
out of her way to avoid talking about it. She had grown up in that forest cabin
alone with her mother, separated from the rest of the world. She had never needed
anything other than her mother’s love, so it hadn’t seemed unnatural at the
time.
There was no way she could tell them anything
she didn’t know herself. Maybe that was why Leyas had avoided telling her
anything about the People of the Forest...but ultimately, the truth of the
matter had been buried with her. And no matter how great or important you were,
you couldn’t speak with the dead.
They could just send her grandfather to
explain things, but rather than dealing with all the arguments, it seemed
easier for Misha to go and show them for herself.
Besides, even if mom taught me, I’m still
learning. I’m not that valuable. And, of course, I don’t know where their
village is.
On top of that, once they saw this famed
“Person of the Forest” was just some kid, they’d probably write her off
immediately. But above all, she was concerned about her father. If he got
worked up over this, his condition would worsen again. Death had already taken
her mother. She wasn’t about to let its scythe take her father too.
“But...” Her father still resisted.
It took Misha and her grandfather together to
persuade him that even if they were only allies in name, they wouldn’t
literally kidnap a girl against her will so soon after making their alliance.
Her father then decided that he would go with them, prompting another tearful
conversation about what would happen if his wound opened again and ended up
taking his life. But after a considerable amount of time and no small number of
tears, Misha finally got permission to go.
Leaving her father, exhausted by the whole
exchange, in the care of the doctor, Misha went and found her best clothing. It
was a simple linen dress, but it was basically new, and she had worked with her
mother doing embroidery work on it to pass the time, so it was very much on the
fancier side of her wardrobe.
“Well, even if it’s not good enough, this is
all I have.”
She had been offered a hastily arranged dress
that was much fancier...but it was clearly one of Lyla’s old dresses, so as
beautiful as it was, Misha wasn’t interested.
I’d rather deal with their disappointment than
have to wear something like that.
That was very much a line in the sand for
Misha. The most she did was adding a braid to her hair and decorating it with a
few flowers.
She headed to the entrance of the mansion,
where her grandfather was waiting to escort her to the castle by carriage.
Misha spent the trip staring out the window, desperately trying to remember the
manners her mother had taught her for dealing with important people.
Why do I of all people have to inspect candidates
for the king’s new concubine?
Geord was extremely unhappy. He was part of
the imperial guard but had originally been a mercenary. By coincidence, he had
saved the king’s life in battle once. Then the king had taken a liking to him
and hired him personally. He had no interest in the formation of this new
“alliance,” nor in the girl they were taking hostage under the pretense of
taking a concubine to keep their new vassal state in line.
Honestly, all he wanted was to get through
life in one piece. He had no grander ambition, the type to do the bare minimum
of training. A bit of entertainment and a good drink was all he needed to be
satisfied with life.
So why did he have to travel to some foreign
nation chasing rumors? And if those rumors were true, he was instructed to
abduct the girl before anyone else could get their hands on her. The king’s
expression of faint curiosity as he gave those orders had infuriated Geord.
They had been surrounded by people, so he had swallowed his anger, but if the
two had been alone, he would have roared furiously at the man and refused.
Geord was just a no-name member of the
imperial guard, but someone from the People of the Forest had saved his life
when he was still working as a mercenary. The king decided that meant he would
be able to recognize one. The other members of the guard sympathized with him,
saying the king was being ridiculous, but none had been so sympathetic that
they’d offered to take his place.
In the end, when he made it to his destination
and asked after the apothecary, he got a rather reluctant response. It seemed
they knew who he was talking about, but they weren’t happy to talk about it.
Using the position of the large nation backing him, he eventually forced them
to talk, coming to learn that she was a concubine of the king’s younger brother
who had passed away in an unfortunate accident not long ago. She had a
daughter, but little was known about her.
The two had lived secluded in the forest. The
king had known he had a niece there, but that was pretty much the extent of his
knowledge. Geord had not been impressed with the news, but he was still here
under orders of his own king. So now he was waiting at the castle to meet the
girl for himself. Trying to calm himself down, he sipped at some tea, idly
wishing he could replace it with a good mug of ale.
Deciding he’d head to the bar as soon as he
got home, a servant finally appeared to announce the visitor had arrived.
Let’s get this over with.
Gulping down the remainder of his tea, Geord
forced himself up out of his chair.
Who really were the People of the Forest? They
were far from the country where Misha lived, so little was known about them,
but they were particularly famous in countries that were prone to war.
The sacred mountain of Trandius stood at the
northern end of the continent of Carmine, covered in snow year-round, and was
surrounded by harsh cliffs and dense forest. It wasn’t a place well suited to
human habitation.
Two hundred years ago, a certain tribe was
forced out of its home and fled to the mountain. No one knew how they managed
to overcome the harsh environment, but nonetheless they did, establishing a
village there and making a life for themselves in hiding. Originally a tribe of
apothecaries, they continued to hone their craft over the years, occasionally
popping up around the world to put their skills to use.
They cured supposedly incurable diseases,
brought people back from seemingly beyond the edge of death, and put an end to
plagues that had claimed countless lives. Though they called themselves
apothecaries, their skill far surpassed that of professional doctors with
formal training, and they possessed skills and techniques found nowhere else.
In general, they didn’t support any given nation, and no promise of wealth or
fortune could convince them to render services if they weren’t interested.
They were very adept at keeping themselves
hidden and next to impossible to track. If by some stroke of luck you managed
to capture one, they would still refuse to lift a finger to help you unless
they had already taken a personal interest in the issue.
The people they saved thought of their help as
a divine miracle and always begged for them to stay. After all, they
discriminated against no one in their treatment, saving poor and wealthy alike,
demanding nothing in return. They could just as often be found helping the poor
who could not afford doctors as they could helping the rich on whom doctors had
already given up. They were revered with a kind of gratitude that defied
description.
But they never answered those wishes to stay,
always disappearing afterward. They wouldn’t even share where they were from.
They would treat the sick and the injured with a gentle smile. They had gentle
blond hair that shone like the moon, and enchantingly beautiful jade-green
eyes. Having taken up residence in the forests around the sacred mountain, that
color came to be associated with the trees of their home, and so they were
called the People of the Forest. Before long, that name spread quietly across the
world, as did word of their exploits.
Royalty and nobility across the continent
attempted to hire them for their services after hearing rumors of them, and no
small number of them lost their lives for refusing. When those they healed
pleaded with them to serve, even if they lied to save themselves and then ran
away, they would shake their heads sadly, saying, “We can’t allow history to
repeat itself.” Some of them were even tortured in hopes they’d give up the
location of their hidden village, so their secrets would be open for
plundering, but each of them bore their torture in silence, sometimes even with
a smile.
When their lives were coming to an end, they
would finally speak: “Those who harm our people will surely meet with
retribution.”
And just as they predicted, those who raised a
hand against the People of the Forest found themselves suffering from
mysterious illnesses. Young or old, male or female, rich or poor. One family
had their limbs rot and fall off, and another was overcome by oozing rashes
that subjected them to terrible agony before killing them. The most mysterious
thing about these diseases was that they didn’t spread. Those who bore the same
family name would be entirely wiped out, while those who served and surrounded them
would be entirely untouched.
The cause and cure for these illnesses were
unknown. The only constant seemed to be that the women and children suffered
somewhat less, while the men tended to suffer more before dying. At first it
was thought to be a coincidence, but after two or three repetitions, it became
clear it was somehow intentional. The retribution didn’t just come for the
offender. Even babies too young to open their eyes were mercilessly cut down
with them. Eventually this curse came for the royal family of a small nation, completely
wiping out their lineage. At that point it became an unwritten rule that the
People of the Forest were to be left alone.
Anyone with any sense of self-preservation
would leave them alone. No one would risk their life to try and learn medical
secrets, and once news spread of the curse set upon the royals, no one dared to
test them again.
What was most terrifying of all was that the
extinguished royal family had only been involved in bothering the People of the
Forest behind the scenes, giving orders in secret.
The king began by giving orders to one of his
nobles, who wouldn’t comply. He then moved on to find someone too powerless to
refuse. In the end, it fell to a knight whose family was being held hostage.
Though knowing he was bound to fail, he
desperately sought out and found one of the People of the Forest, asking for
the location of the secret village. When this person refused to divulge any
information, the knight begged them not to punish his family and, before anyone
could stop him, took his own life. Knowing that harming the People of the
Forest would only mean his own death, he killed himself in hopes of sparing his
family from the same fate.
The revenge curse seemed to skip over everyone
in between, going directly for the royalty. At first it was no more than a
numbness in the hands and feet. Then their extremities started to bleed and
rot. They suspected poison, but no antidote had any effect. Next, they
suspected disease, but no matter how they scoured the literature, they couldn’t
find anything that matched the symptoms they were suffering.
Slowly but surely, the condition worsened.
Then late one night, someone claiming to be from the People of the Forest
appeared to the noble who had refused the first order.
“You’re lucky you refused that first order. No
more foolish kings for you. We wouldn’t want to hurt people like this again.”
Shortly after, the noble in question gathered
his allies and staged a coup d’état. The king was already unpopular for his
failure to govern and had few allies as a result. When his transgression
against the People of the Forest came to light, his own kingdom immediately
rose up against him out of fear, toppling his entire dynasty without need for
foreign intervention.
After that, people understood how dangerous it
was to interfere with the People of the Forest, and so they were left to their
own devices. Though many still longed for the secrets they kept, none were
brave enough to risk their kingdoms over them.
Even today, the People of the Forest continued
to live in their secret village, refining their skills and occasionally lending
them out to the world around them as their whims dictated. Since they often
appeared on battlefields to test their new techniques, they also came to be
given nicknames like “the Jade Reapers” and “Angels of Salvation.”
Geord’s experience with them had also been on
the battlefield. Having just begun his life as a mercenary, he got careless and
took a wound to the stomach that left him all but unconscious. When he came
back to his senses, he was shocked to find he was being treated beside one of
the soldiers he had been fighting against. Despite complaining about being put
beside an enemy, he was told they were kept together for efficiency in
treatment.
The man treating them wasn’t allied with
either of them, so of course he wouldn’t care that they were enemies, and he
had no mercy for patients who tried to fight.
“I just went through all the trouble of saving
you, so don’t throw your life away here. If you’re going to fight, do it where
I can’t see.” He then kicked them out, saying, “If you’re well enough to fight,
you don’t need my help anymore.”
Finding himself strangely persuaded, when he’d
recovered, Geord volunteered to stay and help the man. A number of other
doctors and apothecaries also gathered, forming something of a medical unit as
they tried to absorb anything they could of the man’s incredible skill.
But when the fighting died down, the man
suddenly vanished. Geord was quite taken aback, as the man hadn’t even left a
letter to say he was going. One of the other doctors informed him that was just
the kind of person he was. The People of the Forest hated being chained down
more than anything.
Though flabbergasted, thinking back on the
man’s behavior, Geord could see that being the case. It was only after he left
and made it back home that he realized he’d forgotten to actually thank the man
for saving him. However, that man tended to show up wherever there was
fighting, so if Geord was a bit lucky, they’d cross paths again someday. If
that ever happened, he would properly thank him then and treat him to a drink.
The years passed by before he knew it.
News came that a prince of their new ally had
been gravely wounded in battle but saved by an apothecary from the People of
the Forest. Not only that, but she had also married the prince, and the two had
a daughter. Originally, that girl’s half sister had been intended to become the
king’s new concubine, but the king had been advised he might as well pick
someone with additional value. The king wasn’t particularly interested in a new
concubine anyway, so if this information was accurate, he was all for it.
The kingdom she was from didn’t seem to
recognize her value, so if she was real, the king ordered that she was to be
brought back at any cost. The rest of the nation’s leadership had all agreed,
hence Geord being sent in the first place, so it was clear to see how much they
valued her potential. Geord thought it was all a pain in the neck, though.
It was true that the man who had saved Geord
seemed to have a divine gift, but Geord had seen plenty of lives slip through
his fingers too. He was just a man. He was no god, and he could perform no
miracles. Geord had learned through surviving multiple battles that everything
came down to individual luck. That man could nudge luck a little in the
patient’s favor, but that was it. When a person’s number was up, they died all
the same.
And even if this girl was
the real deal, if she didn’t want to go with him, she’d likely be sent back
right away. Anything else was taking too great of a risk.
Wait, I’m not going to be held responsible if
they do something stupid, am I? Give me a break...
Just as Geord realized that awful possibility,
the door to the guest room swung open.
The sight waiting for him beyond that door
took his breath away.
Long, platinum-blonde hair tied up in a
partial braid and with a pink flower as a hair ornament, eyes the same deep
green as the forest staring back at him—both were the same features he had seen
in that man years ago.
But she’s just a kid!
Her simple linen dress hung on a frame that
was anything but mature. It was standard practice in this country for adult
women making their debut in high society to wear a dress that covered them past
their ankles and to tie their hair up. The girl’s dress didn’t quite reach her
ankles, and only the upper half of her hair was tied up.
She might have had the characteristics of the
People of the Forest, but she was evidently a child. Her fairylike beauty and
cute face could draw a protective instinct out of anyone, but taking a child
like this as a concubine would do no more than stain the king’s honor.
As if to block Geord from continuing to stare
at the girl, an old man stepped forward with an elegant bow, introducing
himself.
“A pleasure to meet you, sir. I am Lucion de
Lindberg. My apologies, but due to my son being yet immobile, I have come as
his representative. Please forgive me and my advanced age.”
It was then Geord finally realized there were
more people in the room than just this girl. Hurriedly correcting his posture,
Geord returned the bow.
“My name is Geord Clark. Thank you for hearing
out this unreasonable request.”
Chapter 10: Judgment and the Future
“I never thought you were such a fool,
Rosmaria.” Sitting upright in bed, the man turned a cold glare on Rosmaria. “Do
you realize how much what you’ve done has hurt me? Has hurt this nation?”
When Rosmaria learned that her father-in-law
and that girl would be departing on a summons to another country, she wanted to
burst out into dance. She had no idea what her servant had done, but at this
rate that girl would be gone for good—most likely as a hostage to their
neighbor. That meant her own daughter was safe. They’d go back to their regular
life, and her husband would no doubt calm down and return to being the kind man
he’d always been.
“Ah, thank goodness. I cannot thank you all
enough,” she said to her maids with a bright smile as she took a sip of her
fragrant tea.
After a short knock on the door, a butler
poked his head inside the room. “The master has called for you. He requests
your presence in his room immediately.”
The butler said this impassively, so Rosmaria
thought little of it, raising her teacup with a small tilt of her head.
“I’m currently having my tea. I will head over
as soon as I am finished.”
Normally, that would be the end of it, but as
much as the butler’s expression remained unchanged, he did not bow and take his
leave as he usually would.
“My sincerest apologies, but he has demanded
your presence immediately. I will have to ask you to finish your tea later.”
The butler stayed in the doorway, staring at her. It was decidedly unpleasant.
Rosmaria honestly hated the man. He was always
running about outside the mansion doing some work or other for her husband, yet
always full of complaints whenever he returned.
A butler that my husband loves but I hate.
Perhaps I’ll speak with my brother about it.
Though she cursed the butler inwardly, she
forced herself up to her feet. He wouldn’t have budged an inch until Rosmaria
moved.
I wonder if my husband is in a better mood today.
His gloominess persisted with that girl around. How fortunate that she’s gone.
In any case, this would be their first time in
ages having alone time together. Rosmaria convinced herself this was a good
thing. The butler’s behavior irritated her, but her husband wanting her so
urgently was actually a cause for celebration.
“Is my hair in order? Nothing is off?”
After checking her appearance with her maids
and taking one last sip of tea, Rosmaria slowly followed the butler out of the
room.
“Whatever do you mean, dear? Have I done
something wrong?” Rosmaria’s bubbly attitude immediately froze under her
husband’s icy glare. Tears pooled in the corners of her eyes.
As she stared moist-eyed at Deenoark, he could
only sigh at her pleading expression. How long ago was it that her tears had
stopped stirring his heart? He must have really been pushing himself since for
quite some time.
“You’re the one who told our new allies about
Misha, aren’t you?”
“I have no idea what you mean.” Rosmaria shook
her head. She genuinely had no idea what he was talking about.
“Then I don’t suppose you know this man?” With
a flick of his hand, his knights dragged a man into the room under restraint.
Rosmaria’s eyes widened. “Yes, he is one of my
bodyguards. Why is he tied up like that?! Let him go immediately!” The servant
that had always stood in her shadow, always protected her from everything,
stood with his hands bound behind his back. One of his cheeks was swollen, and
a trail of blood dripped down from what must have been a split lip.
Now that she thought about it, she hadn’t seen
him in days. Shock and anger took hold of Rosmaria. Why was he here, and in
such terrible condition?
“It seems he talked to a foreign envoy about
Misha for you. That’s what made our new ally demand we hand Misha over to him.”
“Oh my!” Rosmaria exclaimed reflexively,
unable to keep the joy from her voice. That meant Lyla was actually going to be
spared that horrible fate.
But her expression of joy only seemed to
worsen Deenoark’s mood. “I know you’re a fool, but do you really not understand
what this means?”
“Understand what? If our ally wishes for that
girl, we can avoid a great misfortune, can we not? Lyla no longer has to suffer
in such an unfamiliar environment. Is this not cause for celebration?” Rosmaria
replied, indignant at the obvious scorn from her husband. And as the words came
out, she felt it really was a wonderful thing that had happened.
And he doesn’t understand that such a simple
development is a good thing? Perhaps the fever has robbed him of his senses,
after all.
But Deenoark’s next words drained all the
color from her face.
“True enough. I guess now we’ll have no choice
but to send Lyla to a convent.”
“What on earth for?!” Rosmaria all but
screamed, drawing a cold smile out of her husband.
“Even if she did so unintentionally, she
killed someone. That would be the normal procedure, no?”
“But... She...” Rosmaria faltered, finding
great difficulty thinking of how to respond. “But...when I
hurt that woman...” When she finally managed to squeeze something out, it was
something she never would have admitted before.
Even so, Deenoark’s cold smile only widened,
his voice turning soft and gentle as he described a past Rosmaria knew nothing
about.
“Because back then, Ley protected you. She was
worried about you and the child you were about to give birth to. I was planning
on divorcing you anyway, but then your father came and begged me to keep you.
He said you were only temporarily out of your mind because of the pregnancy.
That you were like a wild animal, so desperate to protect your child that you
saw everyone around you as an enemy. He begged me to forgive you just that once
to save face.”
“My father said that...?”
“Oh, so you don’t care about what Ley did for
you? Well, no mind. As you know, my brother and I owe a great debt to your
father. When my brother also begged me to keep you, I gave in.” Deenoark’s eyes
turned distant as he recalled the events.
Although Rosmaria’s father was a great
minister, he was far too soft on his youngest daughter, who had been born so
late. If it weren’t for that one failing, he would have been an incredibly
respectable man.
“I regret staying with you,” Deenoark
continued. “If I had left you like I had intended, I wouldn’t hate you nearly
as much as I do now, nor would I hate myself. Ley would still be here. She
wouldn’t have left her daughter behind...”
Rosmaria’s eyes slowly widened at her
husband’s muttering, words that denied all the years they had spent together.
“Dear...please...” Rosmaria found difficulty
stringing her words together. The rapid-fire developments left her feeling like
her head was going to explode. She wondered if passing out here would improve
her situation, but her husband’s cold glare kept her alert.
“Even if we didn’t send Lyla to a convent,
there are no nobles who would take her as a wife with this known about her.
Don’t you think a life of her being indebted to her younger brother having to
take care of her would be a worse fate?”
“What do you mean? She is the daughter of a
duke! Anyone would be happy to...”
“Even if unintentional, she still killed a woman. On top of that, her mother was so spiteful
that she severely injured one of her husband’s concubines and drove her out of
the house. No matter how good her lineage, only the strangest and the most
desperate would take a girl like that. Do you think a proud girl like Lyla
would accept that kind of a marriage? If she has a brain in that head of hers
at all, the moment she learns we won’t send her away, she should be asking to
be sent to a convent herself.”
Rosmaria’s face had turned white as a sheet as
she sank to the floor. She had lost all strength in her legs. What took her by
surprise most was the lack of any maids behind her to help her to her feet.
Thinking it strange, she turned around. The maids who were always only a step
behind her were nowhere to be seen now.
Deenoark sneered at her confusion. “I’ve had
your wonderful maids arrested as well. Once we investigated them, we uncovered
a great number of suspicious expenditures. They are being questioned in another
room.”
Rosmaria’s support was gone; she could only
tremble silently on her own. As she sat hopelessly forlorn, her husband drove
the final nail into the coffin.
“So, I have one last decision for you to
make—are you going to the convent with Lyla? Or would you like to return to
your family? Or perhaps you’ll run away on your own? Which would you prefer?”
She had no words to respond to her husband’s
icy smirk.
Misha stared absentmindedly out of the window
of the carriage. There wasn’t a single cloud in the sky, making it a perfect
day for drying out herbs. She smiled in spite of herself at how reflexive a
thought that was.
She was now heading away from the kingdom
where she was born. They had prepared a six-horse carriage to take her there,
meaning it must have been expected to be a long journey. The carriage itself
was full of soft cushions, leaving her fully comfortable despite all the
shaking. She would even be able to sleep comfortably on the road if she had to.
What a week...
Toying with her hair, tied up to the side to
keep it out of her way if she were to lean on the seat beside her, she thought
back over everything that had happened.
Summoned to the castle, she met a young man
there with a stern face and a long scar running down his cheek. Introducing
himself to her grandfather as a close associate of the king of this foreign
country, he immediately took a knee before Misha. The way he knelt, right hand
to his chest and left behind his back, was the greatest form of respect shown
by a knight, prompting a wide-eyed look from her grandfather.
Misha had no idea it was such a grand gesture,
but she took a step backward at the sight. A grown man getting down on one knee
and bowing his head to her flustered her a bit.
“Your people were responsible for saving my
life. I failed to give you my thanks back then, so please allow me to do so
now.”
The man’s words only left Misha more confused.
“Umm... I, uhh, I don’t know anything about those people. I’ve always been in
this country. Only my mom knew about them. I’m probably not the person you’re
looking for.”
Geord finally raised his head with a soft
smile. “Sorry. That was a bit of selfishness on my part. I forgot to thank the
guy who actually helped me, and I’ve always regretted it. Seeing someone
related to him, even if only distantly, made me lose myself. Please forgive
me.”
“Oh...okay, but...I really
don’t know anything about where my mom came from. She didn’t tell me anything
about it.” Misha nodded at the man’s apology, but she needed to make sure he
understood that she didn’t know anything about the People of the Forest.
Geord tilted his head slightly. “But your hair
and eyes are exactly like his. In fact, I’ve never seen anything like it
outside of your people.”
Misha grabbed a length of her hair and pulled
it up where she could see. It was a pale gold, and as he said, it was pretty
rare in this kingdom, but there were plenty of people with a deeper shade of
blond hair in Bluheitz, and plenty with green eyes too. Granted, besides her
mother, the only other person she’d met from the People of the Forest was her
uncle, who had the same hair and eyes that she and her mother were born with.
Still, she’d always assumed that was because they were related.
“It is said to be a characteristic of the
People of the Forest. Platinum-blond hair and jade-green eyes. Every one of
your people has been observed to share these characteristics—not that we know
why.”
So, everyone in the tribe has the same color hair
and eyes? I guess they’re passed down from parent to child?
Misha had been taught that people or animals
that lived in small, confined groups started displaying the same
characteristics. They’d also start changing to better suit their environment.
I know hair gets lighter when you live in a
colder climate, right? So, what about eyes? Do people living in places where
the sunlight is weaker have lighter eyes to better take in illumination? Misha stopped despite
herself to consider what implications that had for the place where the People
of the Forest called home, earning an amused smile from Geord.
As young as she looked, her eyes shone with a
bright intelligence. He felt like thinking of her as just some little kid would
be unwise.
“If you say you are not of the People of the
Forest, that is fine. Even so, we would like to invite you to our kingdom. If
the idea of becoming a concubine displeases you, perhaps the thought of
studying with us would be more attractive? We have deep connections with a
number of nations. The royal library is also a vast storehouse for all kinds of
knowledge. Would that be of interest to you?”
The unexpected offer immediately pulled at
Misha’s heart. “I...don’t have to be a concubine?” she murmured, to which Geord
smiled and nodded.
“Just between us, my king is not particularly
interested in his concubines. But his advisors are so desperate to have him
produce an heir that they are constantly forcing new women on him. He is more
than ten years your senior anyway, so there is no need to force you to take his
hand.”
Ignoring the image of the king in the back of
his mind telling him off for speaking ill of his ruler, Geord then turned to
the former duke, who had been staring at him suspiciously all this time.
“I have been granted full authority from the
king in this matter. I can guarantee you that Misha will be met with no
disadvantage. I swear on my name as the Black Lightning.”
“You are the Black
Lightning?” Lucion’s eyes widened again as he looked Geord up and down.
A soldier clad in black armor with a
pitch-black spear, the right hand of the king that danced freely across the
battlefield—Geord was that very knight. Despite being born to a family of low
standing, Geord had earned a position at the king’s side. Even in his kingdom,
which had long been at peace, his exploits had earned him great fame.
Geord gave a small nod, inwardly wanting to
stick out his tongue at the way the man’s gaze instantly changed. To him it was
just an embarrassing nickname, but it came in handy in times like this.
I guess you need to be able to put on a strong
face when it comes to negotiations.
His mission was to bring the daughter of the
People of the Forest back to his country. As long as he accomplished that, he
didn’t expect fudging the details of the arrangement would be an issue. In any
case, if she really was one of the People of the Forest, forcing her to come
against her will would be a terrible move. Geord was well aware of that.
He could tell the old man was weighing Geord’s
words, trying to determine how much he could trust him. However, Geord knew the
current duke’s family was getting quite crowded. They wouldn’t want to keep one
of their precious daughters held back forever. Relinquishing her to Geord would
mean she’d have him as her own personal protector and grant her the protection
of a large nation on top of that.
Additionally, if she was treated as a
traveling student as opposed to permanently becoming a concubine, her family
could bring her home if there were ever any concerns.
If that doesn’t do it, I’m doomed.
He could tell that Misha found the idea
intriguing. As he had hoped, appealing to her hunger for knowledge had been the
right choice. Geord only had to wait patiently for the old gentleman to reach
his own conclusion.
After speaking to the king of Bluheitz, the
adults finally concluded that Misha would live in the kingdom of their new
ally. Specifically, she would be treated as a guest, not as a concubine.
Apparently, the Bluheitz nobility were the ones to suggest the sending of a
concubine in the first place, so there wasn’t much pushback from the other side
on the arrangement being altered.
However, she was still acting as a member of
the duke’s family, and so there was a sudden explosion of activity over
arranging her wardrobe and belongings to be sent. Having never worn anything
except what her mother had sewn for her, Misha found the whole experience of
being measured and trying on outfit after outfit a dizzying affair. Since she
was to go back with Geord, speed was of the essence.
The kingdom refused to send her without at
least one evening dress and day dress that were custom made for her, so the
desperate fervor of the seamstresses overwhelmed Misha.
“Why don’t they just adjust something that’s
already been made?”
“It would reflect poorly on the duke’s house,
on his pride,” explained the old maid that had become something like Misha’s
attendant. “Of course, there is no time to prepare a proper wardrobe for you,
so they will be doing that for a number of your outfits anyway. Still, I
suppose they wanted you to have at least one personalized piece for each.”
“What do my clothes have to do with his
house?” Misha murmured to herself, causing a burst of laughter to come from the
doorway. “Mr. Geord!”
“Sorry. I just happened to overhear.” Still
chuckling, Geord casually stepped into the room. For some reason or other,
after their first meeting, Geord had gone to meet with Deenoark. Once they
formally became acquaintances, Geord had ended up staying at the duke’s
mansion.
With nothing but time on his hands, he spent
his days there training with the duke’s knights and taking Misha on sightseeing
excursions around the area. As much as Misha was effectively just being dragged
along, she had to admit she really enjoyed getting to see the city. The meat
skewers and fried doughnuts sold by the city street stalls were quite unlike
anything she’d eaten at home. Though this was supposed to be her own country,
her eyes still sparkled as every street corner held a new discovery, leading to
a lot of Geord laughing and indulging her.
“The cities on the way to the capital are also
pretty different. I think you’ll enjoy them too. Let’s take our time studying
them on our way back.”
Though a bit embarrassed to be treated like a
little child, she couldn’t help but look forward to their journey. After
spending her whole life growing up in the forest, even just watching the people
walking by on the street was fun for her. Imagining the things she’d see in a
whole other country sent butterflies excitedly whirling inside of her.
Of course, she was still worried about leaving
her father behind, but now that he was finally able to stand with some
assistance, he had happily urged her to go.
“You’re not getting married or anything, so
learn lots before you return. I’ll do my best while you’re away.”
Misha nodded, giving him a big hug. His arms
around her felt so much stronger now than the day she had been crying over her
mother.
And so, they set off. Despite traveling for a
mere day, Misha was already starting to feel disheartened. She wondered if it
was because she was getting farther away from the forest she used to call home.
In the end, with all the preparations, she hadn’t been able to visit home.
For now, I guess you’ll just have to come with
me, mom.
She put a hand to her chest, where under her
clothes hung a bag that had become a bit of a good luck charm. It held both the
lock of her mother’s hair and the strange needles and tube that her mother
used. She had wanted to take them back to the forest, but now they served as a
reminder of her mother.
Turning to the window again, she looked up at the
endless blue sky above. That sky still connected her to her home in the forest,
and even to her mother’s distant homeland. That thought helped ease the
loneliness a little.
“I’ll be back,” she whispered, the wind
carrying her words up into that great blue sky.
Book 2: Travel |
Chapter 1: The Pickpocket and the Sickly Old Woman
The world was roughly divided into three
continents: the southern continent of Iris, the eastern continent of Sullivan,
and the western continent of Carmine.
Of the three, Carmine boasted the largest land
mass and was divided into multiple nations that warred for domination. The
nation where Misha lived, the kingdom of Bluheitz, was one such country. It was
a moderately sized kingdom with a long history. Though war had once been
typical for Bluheitz, for the past two hundred years it had settled peacefully
under the reign of a string of more moderate monarchs, maintaining cordial
relations with its neighbors through the tightrope of diplomacy.
However, after the latest succession, the
neighboring Empire of Silva suddenly amassed a newfound strength and attacked.
With Bluheitz’s army weakened by longstanding peace, they were all but helpless
in front of Silva’s advance.
Shortly before their capital would fall,
Bluheitz managed to forge an alliance with the greater Kingdom of Redford,
narrowly avoiding destruction. It would no doubt cause no small trouble for
them in the future, but the alliance allowed them to avoid being completely
swallowed by a hostile power; it was clearly the better choice.
Redford also recognized that having Bluheitz
survive between them and the ambitious Empire of Silva was safer for
themselves, rather than allowing the empire to encroach on their own borders.
So rather than absorbing Bluheitz, they left it to stand as an independent
nation between them and the threat, minimizing the efforts they would need to
spend on national defense. Even though there was some danger inherent in an
alliance with Bluheitz, they decided it was far outweighed by the benefits.
On the surface, this alliance was enough to
bring Redford’s might behind Bluheitz’s forces, prompting Silva to cool their
aggression. It seemed they weren’t willing to make an enemy of one of the
largest nations on the continent quite yet. And with so much new territory in
their hands, internal problems started to sprout all over Silva, forcing them
to direct their efforts inward.
With all these developments, Bluheitz offered
a princess of their own to be given as a concubine to the king of Redford in
order to solidify ties between their nations. Rejecting the offer would have
thrown a wrench into the early development of their relationship, so the king
of Redford reluctantly agreed to take one, deciding he would just leave her
with the rest of his concubines he paid little attention to—but then some
interesting news happened to reach him.
There was a nation known as the Ourenge
Alliance in the far north of Carmine. It was a number of tribes bound together
in one country, having no monarch. Instead, it was ruled by representatives of
each tribe coming together to run the nation. It was quite the odd system of
government. Among them was the even more mysterious People of the Forest.
They were renowned as saviors of the
battlefield, appearing and disappearing across conflict zones like phantoms
with extraordinary medical knowledge and abilities. Many lives had been saved
by their hands, and many nations had attempted to take control of them to no
avail. It had become well-known that those who used force against the People of
the Forest met with grisly fates of their own.
The Kingdom of Redford had not yet confirmed
the background of this blonde-haired, green-eyed girl, nor had they finalized
an agreement over a concubine from Bluheitz, and so they decided to bet on this
girl being from that tribe. The king sent word a month ago that he wished for
the girl for himself.
Fresh in the king’s mind was the irritated
expression of his close aide when instructed to verify the rumor and then bring
her back if true. Now reading a letter sent ahead by that same aide, the king
of Redford, Ryan Lou Redford, broke into a grin.
“Good news, Your Majesty?” asked Tris, another
aide to the king, prompting Ryan to hand over the letter.
“Geord was supposed to be picking up a concubine
for me. Instead, he’s coming back with a student. One with platinum-blonde hair
and jade-green eyes.”
“Oh?” Tris frowned as he scanned the letter.
“There he goes, deciding things on his own again...”
The sour expression sent Ryan bursting into
laughter. The ever serious civil official in Tris never seemed to see eye to
eye with the mercenary raised to a military officer in Geord. They were almost
always in conflict, though the relationship mostly consisted of Tris scolding
Geord for some reason or other, Geord replying flippantly, and thus Tris
getting even more angry.
As usual, Ryan tried to smooth over Tris’s
angry reaction. “Hard to say he made the wrong decision, though. If we forced
her to come here as a concubine against her will, then I’d be in real danger if
she’s actually from the People of the Forest.”
There were all kinds of fates one might meet
for trying to bend the freedom-loving People of the Forest to one’s own will,
and none of them were anything Ryan was interested in experiencing for himself.
There were even rumors that an entire kingdom had been destroyed as retribution
once.
“Even so, she’s still a little girl. It should
be easy enough to coax her to our side,” Tris murmured, his face still in a
scowl.
Ryan shrugged. “In any case, I gave full
authority in this matter to Geord. I’m sure he knows what he’s doing.” With
that, the king turned his attention to the other documents on his desk waiting
for him.
Tris gave a small sigh. To put it positively,
the king was quite magnanimous. To put it negatively, he didn’t take matters
seriously enough. In any case, pursuing the issue further was meaningless.
I suppose I will have to meet the girl for myself
and see if she is genuinely of the People of the Forest. If there is value in
keeping her, we will still have time to act then. At least we will have her in
our hands for now,
Tris thought, but one last question rose to mind.
“So, when do we expect the young lady to
arrive? We will need to begin preparing a room for her.” If she was coming as a
student, they couldn’t just throw her in with the other concubines as they had
originally planned.
Ryan tilted his head. “Who knows? I certainly
don’t.”
“What do you mean?” Tris replied, confused by
the king’s answer.
The shortest route between Redford and
Bluheitz was a journey of seven days. Even if the girl wasn’t used to
traveling, they should have at least been able to make a reasonable estimate.
“Geord sent one more letter with that one.”
As the king passed over another letter, Tris’s
scowl deepened further. “That idiot!” he growled, crumpling the paper in his
hands. In the curt language Geord always used, the second letter indicated that
Misha was enjoying the trip, so they’d be delayed by sightseeing on their
journey back.
“Achoo!”
“Are you okay, Mr. Geord?”
After her chaperone found an inn for the
night, Misha had decided she wanted to go take a look around the city before it
got late. Geord, who was accompanying her, had just had a tremendous sneeze.
“Oh, don’t worry about it. I’m sure it’s just
someone talking about me.”
Geord smiled as Misha studied his face, but
internally he was biting back grumbles. It was just about that time that the
messenger should have made it back to Redford, so he could easily guess who was
gossiping about him behind his back. He was sure one of them was laughing while
the other looked about ready to commit murder.
Thinking of the expression that must have been
on his straitlaced friend’s face right now (knowing full well calling him a
“friend” would have angered him further), Geord couldn’t help but snicker. He
honestly loved seeing Tris react to every tiny little thing. Seeing someone who
was always so calm and composed lose it and start angrily yelling was quite
entertaining.
I bet he’ll be furious when I get back. Maybe I
should start thinking of an excuse now.
“You look like you’re having fun,” Misha said,
curious.
“Yeah, I was just thinking of picking up a
present for a friend. What do you think I should buy?”
“What kind of person is he?” Misha replied,
taking the question quite seriously.
The way she got excited over every little
thing they saw and every bit of food they ate—the way she wore her happiness on
her sleeve was adorable.
Enjoying the time he spent with her, Geord was
going out of his way to take unnecessary breaks, stopping early for the day,
and overall drawing their trip out quite a bit. On the other hand, he felt a
distinct pain in his chest when he saw her struggling to hold back tears every
time they passed by a parent and child in the street. It was easy to forget she
was a child who’d lost her mother less than a month earlier.
As bright and cheerful as she acted, he knew
she spent her nights quietly crying in bed. She tried to hide it, but the walls
of their rooms at the inn were pretty thin. Greeting her cheerfully in the
morning as if her eyes weren’t still puffy from the night before was brutal
work for someone with as blunt a touch as Geord, but he didn’t let that
discourage him. He realized he had taken quite a liking to this brave and
honest girl.
Is this what it would be
like to have a daughter? the twenty-six-year-old
ex-mercenary thought as he watched her scrutinize the goods of a souvenir shop
one by one.
“Stop right there, kid. You’re going to give
that back to her right now.”
Fully invested in inspecting the wares before
her, Misha was pulled out of her own thoughts by Geord’s voice, prompting her
to turn around. There she saw Geord, scowling as he gripped the arm of an
eight-year-old boy.
“Shut up! I don’t know what you’re talking
about! Let me go! I said let me go!”
Misha blinked in confusion as the boy
struggled to break free from Geord’s grip.
“Mr. Geord? What’s wrong?”
“This kid stole your purse,” Geord replied
with a shrug.
Misha hurriedly felt around her pockets.
“Oh...it’s gone!” After confirming that her spending money was in fact gone,
Misha, troubled, turned to the boy. “Uh...you took it? Can I have it back,
please?”
“I didn’t take anything, idiot!” The boy stuck
his tongue out at her, earning himself a sharp rap on the head from Geord.
“You’re not going to get anything from being
nice to him. Come on, cough it up!” As the boy clutched his head in pain, Geord
reached a hand into his pocket and pulled out a small purse. He tossed it to
Misha, who caught it out of the air, a quick inspection revealing it was in
fact hers.
“Thank goodness...” she murmured, clutching it
tightly. It only had a little spending money in it, but the purse itself was
very precious to her. She would have been crushed if she’d lost it.
Her mother had made this small, embroidered
purse. The pattern, of green leaves and colorful flowers, was apparently a
traditional wish for happiness for one’s children passed down in her home.
Misha held it tight to her chest, fighting back tears once again as she
remembered how her mother had smiled when she gave it to her, claiming it was a
good luck charm for her.
“Wh-What’s your problem? You’re both rich,
aren’t you?! What do you need that little bit of money for?” the boy started to
shout, no longer fighting Geord now that the proof of his misdeed was on the
table.
“Wow. No guilt at all. How should we deal with
him, then? Should I just give him a thrashing, or how about I hand him over to
the guards?” Geord sniggered, his eyes holding a vicious light. With how rough
his face was, Geord could really look scary when he tried.
Though the boy’s face went decidedly pale, he
scrunched his mouth and stared back defiantly. The kid had guts—not that Geord
wanted to express that out loud—but Geord still needed to think of how to deal
with him. If he let the boy go just because ultimately no harm was done, he’d
end up stealing from someone else.
What’ll it take to make sure he never does it
again?
The crowd around them had started watching the
exchange. Geord didn’t like being the center of attention like this. For
someone who didn’t know what was happening, the situation must have resembled
an adult bullying a child. Because of his refined clothes and the sword at his
hip, no one in the crowd was willing to call him out, but the disapproving
looks were starting to pour in.
Among the crowd, an elderly woman suddenly
called out to them. “Excuse me! Did this boy do something wrong?”
She must have been drawn by the commotion. She
was clearly out of breath and her complexion was awful. It seemed like she
might collapse at any moment. Seeing how thin her arms were in her sleeves,
Misha couldn’t help but frown.
“Granny! Don’t run like that!” The boy tried
to run over to support the faltering woman, but Geord held him tight.
“Is this your grandson?” Ignoring the boy’s
vain attempts to escape, Geord turned his attention to the woman. Though cowed
briefly by Geord’s harsh gaze, she quickly straightened up and nodded.
“Yes. This is my grandson, sir knight. Has he
done something to offend you?” Despite the dozens of onlookers, she showed no
signs of timidity. There even seemed to be an air of elegance to her. Closer
inspection revealed that while her clothes were quite old, the fabric was of a
high quality.
A fallen noble, then?
Despite being two heads shorter than him, she
looked straight back at him, not averting her gaze. Those were the eyes of
someone with a strong sense of justice. Satisfied with his inspection, Geord
finally let the boy go. A woman like this would have no problem getting her
grandson back on the straight and narrow.
“He tried to steal my charge’s purse, so I was
just about to scold him. He wasn’t very good at it, so I bet he’s never done
this before. I didn’t intend to report him to the guards, but...”
His words were as much for the audience as for
the old woman. He had noticed that ever since she had stepped forward, the
crowd’s hostility had been churning more and more. As much as they were just
passing through this town, he still didn’t need a reputation for bullying
children.
“What?!” The old woman’s face immediately
darkened. When she turned to ask her grandson if Geord’s claim was true, the
boy looked away guiltily. It was all but an admission. Pushing the boy’s head
down, the woman also dropped to her knees and bowed.
“This boy has lost his parents, so I have been
tasked with raising him. It is my failing that led him to feel we are too poor
to satisfy him, but he should still know right from wrong. It is my fault for
raising a boy that would willingly attempt to steal another’s belongings. If
you wish to find fault, I will take full responsibility.”
As the sickly woman dropped to her knees,
Geord hurriedly reached out and tried to pull her up. The boy, misunderstanding
the gesture, immediately jumped in front of his grandmother.
“Don’t touch her! I’m the one who did it! You
can punish me!”
Geord stared back at the glaring boy for a bit
before sighing. “Fine.”
Although he’d volunteered for the punishment,
the boy’s face clearly paled at the thought of what Geord was planning to do.
Still, as scared as he was, he didn’t budge. He knew if he ran, the punishment
would land on his grandmother instead. That was the one thing he wanted to
avoid most of all.
“Please, wait—”
Just as the old woman tried to pull her
grandson back, a loud thump resounded from the top of his head as Geord’s fist
struck. The crowd, which had been watching with silent, rapt attention seemed
to collectively hold their breath as the boy wordlessly dropped to his knees,
clutching his head.
“Wow, that looked painful...” Misha murmured,
having trouble keeping up with the situation despite being very much involved
in it.
It sure did; the frowns from the crowd of
onlookers seemed to indicate they agreed with her assessment.
“That’s about as much punishment as a kid’s
prank deserves,” Geord said with a snort, lifting the stooping boy back to his
feet and spinning him to face his grandmother, who was still sitting on her
knees. “If you do bad things, the responsibility falls back on your
grandmother. Got it? Burn this sight into your memory!”
The boy, still teary-eyed from the pain,
stared at his grandmother. Someone precious to him was kneeling in the dirt
because of what he had done. The sight was like a chain around his heart.
“But... But...” Tears started to fall from the
boy’s eyes.
His grandmother had fallen ill last spring;
ever since then, she’d been unable to do little more than wake up and go to
sleep. They had no money to afford a doctor, and they couldn’t get any medicine
to help her condition improve. At this rate, he was just sitting around waiting
for her to die. The thought of losing his last living family had forced him to
turn to thievery—but just a little bit.
He would just take a small amount from someone
who looked rich. All they’d lose would be a bit of spending money. It wouldn’t
be such a big deal. As he tried to convince himself of that, he’d seen a girl
just a few years older than him prancing around the city happily. Her hair was
long and tidy, her fingers clean and soft. Though her clothes weren’t that
fancy, the boy could tell they were quite well-made.
“I can’t let granny die... I just need enough
for a doctor...for some medicine...”
No matter the excuse, a crime was a crime.
There was no denying that, but once they heard the boy’s motivation, it was
hard to stay angry at him.
Attention was finally drawn away from the boy
as his grandmother got back to her feet. While the boy stood crying, she raised
a frail arm and slapped him.
“What value is there in living any longer if
it’s on the back of stealing?! If you were going to commit a crime, why not
just kill me?!”
Despite her sickly demeanor, the woman’s words
rang with a dignity that overwhelmed the crowd. Even the boy stood stunned, not
even wiping the tears from his face. Everything seemed frozen in time...until
Misha moved.
Using a handkerchief to wipe the tears from
the boy’s face, she turned and took the old woman’s hand.
“For now, let’s go somewhere else. You don’t
look so good. Let’s find a place for you to sit down...okay?”
Chapter 2: The Old Woman’s Checkup and Hints of Misdeeds
Once all the excitement was over, the already
ailing woman looked even worse. After Misha insisted she find a place to lie
down, the old woman somewhat abashedly led them to a small, worn-out residence
on the edge of the town. Muttering about having no one to take care of the
place as they slipped through the broken front gate, she led them to a building
that looked every bit like a haunted house.
The path leading up to the front door had
likely been beautiful once, but with no one to maintain it, the plants lining
it had taken over. The weeds left barely enough space for a person to walk. The
mansion itself was similarly unkempt, walls dark with grime and roof faded.
Thick curtains covered every window, giving the whole building a rather gloomy
atmosphere. And though the mansion was quite large, there was no sign of anyone
else around.
“You two live here alone?” Misha asked
casually, getting a small nod from the boy walking quietly at her side.
“But when mom and dad were around, there were
a lot more people living here.” The boy’s determined spirit from his
confrontation with Geord was nowhere to be seen, his replies short and quiet.
It seemed his grandmother’s scolding had hit home.
Rusty hinges squealed unhappily as they opened
to let the group into the main building, which was dark and dusty despite it
being early in the evening.
She lives in a place like this? In her condition?
As much as she wanted to scowl, Misha made
sure to keep her face passive. When she was led deeper into the living room,
she almost gave a sigh of relief to see the old but clean and well-preserved
furniture there. A mansion this size was far too much for a sickly old woman
and a little boy to clean by themselves, so they must have only been taking
care of the parts they used for daily life.
“Please allow me to introduce myself. My name
is Marianne Karloff. This is my grandson, Kent. My sincerest apologies for what
happened earlier.”
As Misha and Geord took a seat on the sofa
offered to them, the old woman sat down opposite them, bowing her head deeply
as she introduced herself. Kent sat beside her, meekly tilting his head down.
“Please, that’s enough! You already
apologized!” Misha insisted almost on reflex. She hadn’t followed them all the
way home so they could apologize more. “Umm, actually, I happen to be an
apothecary. If you don’t mind, could I take a look at you, Miss Marianne?”
Marianne and Kent exchanged a glance, both
concerned. The girl sitting in front of them was clearly a child, yet she
claimed to be an apothecary? Even if she was a student, the man with her looked
like anything but her teacher.
She must have been the daughter of some
affluent family, and the man was her bodyguard. That was the assumption Kent
had made when he tried to pickpocket her. He had targeted someone who looked
rich and spoiled because he figured if he got caught, a few tears would be all
it would take to earn forgiveness.
“I appreciate the offer,” the old woman
replied slowly, “but I am afraid we have no way to possibly pay you for such a
service.”
Misha quickly shook her head and started
waving her hands, cutting off Marianne’s refusal. “Please, you don’t need to
give me anything! It’s more, like...for my own satisfaction. We only met by
chance, but after seeing that you’re sick, I feel I may be able to help, so...”
A young boy and his grandmother. Although
Kent’s methods had been wrong, they’d clearly shown how much he treasured her.
Having just lost her own mother, the whole situation pulled strongly on Misha’s
heart. She couldn’t bring herself to be angry with him. When her mother fell to
her death, Misha would have made a deal with any devil if it would have meant
saving her.
Marianne noticed Misha fall silent, on the
verge of tears. “In that case, may I ask for your help?” she asked.
At that, Misha’s face lit up, awash with
relief. Leaving Marianne on her chair, Misha got up and took her pulse. She
then checked her eyes and ears, peeked down her throat, and listened to her
heartbeat and the sound of her lungs. After a few questions, she began a
physical examination using her hands.
The reserved little girl had vanished,
replaced by a confident and assertive apothecary. The other three in the room
watched the whole thing with no small amount of incredulity.
“Your lungs don’t sound right. Your digestive
tract seems to be fairly weak as well. That explains your lack of appetite—the
constant fever too. But you don’t have a cough, and there’s no inflammation in
the throat. The symptoms don’t line up with something like a cold,” Misha
explained out loud, as much to help herself think as to share what she had
found with Marianne. Her gaze grew distant as she delved deep into the well of
her knowledge.
Geord watched it all happen from a short
distance away. It was his first time seeing her work as an apothecary, so he
watched with interest. Despite Duke Deenoark clearly having tried to hide it,
casual conversation around the mansion had made it quite clear that Misha was
very good at what she did. That the mansion had been overflowing with wounded
upon Geord’s arrival had made him wonder just how hard they were trying to hide
her skills in the first place.
Either way, it seemed the gag orders hadn’t
made their rounds yet, as a couple questions to the families of the wounded had
been all it took for Geord to learn about her.
“Miss Misha saved my husband,” one said.
“She noticed the pain in my back immediately,”
another said.
Everyone excitedly shared their stories of
her. Their eyes shone with an almost religious adoration for the little healer.
He’d brought it up with Misha shortly after
they began traveling together, and though she’d seemed quite hesitant to share,
she’d eventually confessed that her mother had been an apothecary who’d been
teaching her.
Actually, she had tried to lie about it at
first, but when Geord had crossed his arms and insisted that someone with no
experience likely wouldn’t be allowed to look at medical texts from the
library, she immediately fessed up.
“Actually, my mother recognized me as a
full-fledged apothecary. When we were at my father’s mansion, I was in charge
of taking care of the wounded. I’ll definitely be able to understand those
books!” Her entire reason for agreeing to go to Redford was access to that
library. There was no point in hiding who she was if it meant her losing that.
It had taken everything Geord had not to laugh
when her pleading eyes rested on him.
Come on, that was way too easy. Is this girl
going to be okay?
But of course, adult that he was, Geord kept
his true feelings carefully concealed as he nodded deeply.
“Ah, in that case, you should be okay. I might
even be able to get some of the confidential books released for you to look
at.”
“Really?! That’s amazing!” As Misha threw her
hands up in the air in celebration, Geord finally surpassed his limit and burst
out laughing.
The difference between the Misha back then and
the Misha working in front of him now was like night and day.
Forget apothecary, she’s more like a doctor. What
kind of upbringing makes a girl like this?
He then turned a look to Kent, sitting by
restlessly as he watched Misha work. His distrust from before had vanished,
overcome entirely by concern for his grandmother. Although it seemed like he
was dying to interject, he held his tongue, watching Misha work with a
desperate hope in his eyes. Geord couldn’t help but be impressed by that silent
trust in the little apothecary. In the boy’s eyes, the small,
unreliable-looking girl had almost instantly transformed into a dependable
apothecary who could be trusted with his grandmother’s life.
“Would you mind if I took a look at your skin
as well? Obviously not here. We should probably go to your bedroom.”
Marianne didn’t so much as hesitate. “This
way.”
Following Marianne out of the room, Misha
walked to the master bedroom deep into the mansion’s second floor. As Geord
attempted to follow her inside, Misha pushed him back with a stern look.
“I’m examining a woman here. Please stay
outside.”
She then slammed the door, prompting a sigh
from Geord, mostly aimed at himself for being so enthralled by Misha’s work
that common sense had slipped his mind.
Meanwhile, a young boy started laughing at his
side. “Pretty sad for a grown-up. Looks like Misha bosses you around too.”
“Is that any way to talk to an adult?” Geord
replied, ruffling the boy’s hair rather violently. Kent complained angrily at
the scolding, and after finally escaping Geord’s clutches, he started to
mutter.
“Who is Misha anyway? When I saw her in town,
I thought she was just some rich girl. Is granny going to be okay?” he asked,
his voice growing quieter.
Geord reached for the kid’s head again, this
time gently smoothing over Kent’s now wildly disarrayed hair. “I don’t know
what’s going on with your grandma, but I can tell you Misha is really good at
what she does. I guarantee it.”
Kent nodded. “Okay.”
The door then swung open, Misha popping her
head out. “You can come in now.”
Stepping inside, they found Marianne sitting
in front of a large glass door leading out onto a balcony. Her clothes were
already fully back in order, and her expression seemed somehow brighter than
before.
“Your grandmother is doing just fine. After
looking at her skin, I stimulated some acupuncture points for her. She should
take it easy today, resting and drinking a lot of water. If she gets hungry,
she can eat normally. The only request I have is that you let her sleep in bed
with you tonight, Kent. Don’t worry, her condition isn’t contagious,” Misha
explained politely as Kent ran to his grandmother’s side. “My herbs are all
back at the inn, so I’ll make up some medicine for her and bring it back later.
Please lie down until then. Kent, make sure she doesn’t push herself.”
“Got it,” Kent nodded, before asking one
question. “But what’s wrong with staying in this room?”
Misha gave a soft smile. “There’s something
bad in the air here. I’ll bring something to clean it out along with the
medicine, so until then, no coming in here, okay? Now, let’s go downstairs.”
At Misha’s urging, Kent and Marianne dutifully
did as instructed. Geord, bringing up the rear, followed them all out, an
oddity in what Misha said pricking at his mind.
It’s not contagious...but
it’s in the air of this room? But considering how
Misha had smiled when she said it, he was sure she wouldn’t say anything while
they were still in the mansion. He also couldn’t help but be curious about the
object wrapped in cloth Misha carried out of the room with her.
“Mr. Geord, I have a request.” After seeing
Marianne to her bed, Misha and Geord immediately headed back to their inn. Once
the haunted house was out of sight, she quietly gave Geord a list of things
that she wanted investigated. “I can get back to the inn by myself. Can you
look into these while I’m working on the medicine?”
“Got it.” In all honesty he was full of
questions, but once he saw the smile evaporate from Misha’s face, he kept them
to himself. “I’ll need to go back to the inn with you, though. To do that kind
of investigating, I should get more people.” The one thing he wouldn’t budge on
was letting her walk around town by herself.
“Also, if it’s possible, could you send
someone to protect Miss Marianne?”
“Okay,” Geord responded after a brief pause.
Together with the things she had asked him to investigate, the situation was
starting to sound awfully suspicious. As much as he wanted to sigh, excitement
gnawed at him at the same time.
And so he began racking his brain, trying to
figure out how he’d fulfill this little girl’s requests. He didn’t even notice
how strangely natural it felt to be doing what she asked.
Chapter 3: The Desire to Save Others
Returning to the inn, Misha set about dividing
up the herbs and making the medicine she needed while sinking deep into
thought.
Marianne’s checkup had left her with a strong
sense of unease. When Misha asked about how the illness had started, she got
the answers she more or less expected. Everything pointed to bronchitis, but
Misha’s intuition told her something was amiss.
Wondering if there might have been some
symptoms even the patient wasn’t aware of, she decided to ask if she could
inspect her skin a bit more closely. If Marianne had refused, Misha would have
had to leave it at that. A grown woman couldn’t have been happy about showing
off her body to anyone other than her own husband.
Misha was elated when Marianne agreed to the
examination so readily. Partly because it showed how much the old woman trusted
her despite having just met her, but more because she was excited at the
prospect of solving the mystery of her condition.
Her excitement cooled when she stepped into
the bedroom. She immediately picked up a faint scent of something wrong.
Despite being hidden behind the scent of flowers, the smell immediately
triggered warnings of extreme danger in her head.
Misha immediately stepped past Marianne and
threw open the glass door leading to the balcony. She then went around the
room, throwing all of the windows open. Once the wind had swept through the
room, she finally heaved a deep sigh.
“Umm... Miss Misha?” Marianne said, taken
aback by Misha’s sudden flurry of movement.
That brought the girl back to her senses,
quietly chiding herself. She had reflexively dropped everything to get the air
circulating in the room. She could see her mother in the back of her mind,
scolding her for worrying her patient.
“Oh, sorry. I just thought it was a bit stale
in here. I know it’s a bit cold out, but do you mind?” Trying to sound as
lighthearted as possible, Misha moved a small table and set of chairs over to
the windows, urging Marianne to sit.
Without a word, Marianne did as she was told,
but it was quite clear she had seen through Misha’s acting. After dropping her
head and sighing deeply, she looked up again straight at Misha.
“There is something wrong in this room?” It
was less a question, and more a request for confirmation.
Though hesitating at Marianne’s hard gaze,
Misha quickly steeled herself. This was Marianne’s house, and she was the
patient. And if Misha’s guess was right, this situation was far more serious
than some passing girl could hope to solve on her own.
“My nose is pretty sensitive, partly thanks to
my training as an apothecary, but my mother said I was also just born with it.
Apparently, my sense of smell is many times stronger than an ordinary
person’s.”
Marianne listened quietly to Misha’s
explanation.
“The moment I stepped into this room, I
smelled a number of things: a floral fragrance, laundry detergent, but among
them, something that definitely doesn’t belong—the smell of a very rare
mineral. It’s actually a kind of semiprecious stone, but if you powder it and
remove the impurities, it can become quite toxic. The primary symptoms are
fatigue, shortness of breath, nausea, and mild fever.”
Marianne’s face paled as Misha listed the
symptoms, each one sounding more than familiar.
“If the poison is administered slowly to a
person over time, someone unfamiliar would see it as a gradual decline in
health until they finally passed away.”
Trembling at Misha’s words, Marianne loosened
her clothes to allow Misha to look at her back.
Misha bit her lip. On the pale skin of her
back were numerous faint, small purple marks like bruises. Though she had only
heard of them in theory, Misha recognized what they were immediately.
“The bruises are still quite faint. If I make
an antidote for you, you should be fine.”
“Oh heavens...” Marianne murmured, covering
her face with her hands as she trembled. Misha quietly helped the old woman get
dressed before stepping back.
“My son and his wife died from the same
illness,” Marianne said. “They grew sick at the end of autumn, then slowly
weakened more and more. No medicine seemed to help. The doctors were entirely
perplexed. Rumors spread that this mansion was cursed, and so people started to
leave. Unable to maintain the business we used to run, we had some friends take
over for us...”
As Marianne quietly explained her situation,
Misha stepped over to the fireplace in the room. The ashes were already white,
no sign of any flame, but just to be sure, Misha covered her face with a
handkerchief as she leaned in to inspect the interior.
“Found it.”
Though hard to see through the soot, on the
upper part of the fireplace just behind the lip that jutted out into the room,
she saw a faint glimmer. But more than that, the smell she had picked up on as
soon as she stepped into the room was much stronger here.
The powdered mineral had to have been applied
here. By leaving the poison here, when the fireplace was lit to keep the room
warm at night, it would vaporize the powder and fill the room with a toxic gas.
That poison would slowly eat away at the body of the room’s owner.
“How often have you been using this fireplace
this winter?” Misha asked, face grim as she turned away from the hearth.
Marianne tilted her head slightly, thinking
for a moment. “As embarrassing as it is, not often. We do not have the money to
afford lighting fires all the time. When it gets really cold, we light the fire
in the living room, and I sleep on the sofa with my grandson there.”
Despite Marianne’s shame in her reply, Misha
breathed a sigh of relief. “That’s good. If you had
been lighting this fire every night, your health could’ve been beyond saving.”
Marianne’s face filled with terror. “Are you
saying someone actually put poison in there? And my son and his wife fell prey
to the same thing?”
Misha spoke slowly, still organizing the
information in her head. “I can’t say anything for sure about your son, as I
didn’t see him personally, but if they were using this room when they grew
sick, it is a very real possibility. Still, there’s one thing that doesn’t
quite add up yet.” Misha inspected the incense burner placed above the
fireplace, taking it in her hands. “How long ago did your son pass away?”
Marianne seemed a bit perplexed by the
question, staring at the back of the girl who seemed strangely invested in her
room’s decorations. “It would be just about five years ago now. Why?”
“Have you been using this room for the last
five years?” Misha asked, turning to look at her.
Marianne shook her head. “No. It was my son’s
room, after all. It held too many painful memories. But someone told me that as
the head of this house, I had a responsibility to use it—to make sure it wasn’t
abandoned. Besides, this is the best room in the house. It has no drafts and is
quite warm, plus that person was kind enough to clean up all the dust for me.”
Marianne looked questioningly back at Misha,
who replied with a shake of her own head, “It’s nothing. I just thought your
symptoms were awfully mild if you had used this room for so long. Only a few
times this winter you said, right?” Misha gave her a bright grin as she walked
back to Marianne’s side. “Okay, I know what you need now. I’ll head back to the
inn and make some medicine for you. Besides that, do you mind if I borrow this
incense burner? It looks perfect for making the medicine.”
It was a large burner, holding a small candle
at the bottom to heat a larger dish holding incense above it. If you changed
the dish on top of the candle, it could certainly be used for boiling water.
“Of course not. I have used it a number of
times since receiving it, but if you don’t mind that, then please go ahead.”
“Someone gave you this? It’s not something
with sentimental value, is it? Like any connections to your son?”
The exquisite engravings on the burner made it
evidently intended as an ornamental piece in addition to its practical
function. It seemed like a rather expensive piece, so Misha wanted to make
sure, but Marianne appeared wistful.
“No, it’s fine. My son used to use one like
this all the time, but the one he used was dropped and broken when the room was
getting cleaned. This one was a gift, as an apology. But every time I light it,
it reminds me of him...”
Deciding it was best to get to work right
away, Misha took the incense burner, tasked Geord with a few requests, and then
started making the medicine. But rather than using the incense burner for the
purpose she had explained, she instead left it on the table beside her window.
That was only natural; the medicine she was going to make didn’t need to be
heated at all.
She had taken the incense burner for the cruel
trap she had found in it. The holder for the candle on the incense burner had a
beautiful gleam to it. Her hands coming to a stop, she shot a dejected look at
the incense burner.
She had no idea who had gifted this burner to
Marianne. Maybe the mastermind was entirely different, using the person who had
given it to her as part of a grander plan.
I sure hope so.
It was clear to her that Marianne trusted the
person who had given it to her a great deal. She didn’t want to discover
someone Marianne liked so much wanted the old woman dead. She had already lost
her precious family.
But Misha knew that malice struck in many
ways. Turning ill intentions like that aside was no small feat.
Misha squeezed her eyes tight, trying to
suppress the pain in her chest. Memories of her mother came to mind, the older
apothecary limping a little but smiling as she enjoyed her trek through the
forest. Her father followed her with a gentle look on his face. It was the
greatest happiness Misha had ever witnessed, and one she’d never see again.
“I hope I can protect them.”
The little boy and the old woman had no one
else but each other. Shaking the thought from her head, Misha returned to
working on the medicine.
Chapter 4: Hands That Save
After bringing Misha back to the inn and
telling her she wasn’t to step outside until he was back, Geord left to go take
care of her requests. While he didn’t like traveling with so many people as it
slowed things down considerably, he had brought a number of soldiers with him
to escort Misha back to Redford, so he had no shortage of hands for the task
before him.
Being in a foreign country, they had limited
access to information, but as they say, “set a thief to catch a thief.” They’d
figure it out somehow.
Picking a pair of his subordinates who were
relatively smaller and didn’t stand out quite so much, he sent them to guard
the Karloff estate. With how overgrown the yard was, they’d have no issues
finding a place to hide.
“This really turned out interesting, didn’t
it?” He never would have expected that catching a pickpocket in the market
would lead all the way here.
Misha had asked him to do three things: to
learn the reputation and current standing of the Karloff family; to discover
who was meddling with the Karloff family and what their relationship to the
Karloffs was; and lastly, to find out who was in charge of administering
justice in this region.
When Geord asked why, Misha replied that
Marianne’s symptoms were all indicative of poisoning. The poison in question
wasn’t a naturally occurring one. It was, in fact, quite rare.
“Clearing the poison from her system is easy
enough, but if we don’t deal with the source, the same thing will happen all
over again. I don’t want that,” she muttered, eyes downcast. There was
something bitter in her voice as she vowed to stand in the way of whatever evil
was aiming for the old woman’s life.
Remembering that the same kind of irrational
malice had taken Misha’s mother from her put Geord in a gloomy state of mind
too.
Setting his men to work on what Misha asked,
Geord quickly learned it was a pretty standard takeover conspiracy at play. A
mysterious illness took the lives of a wealthy merchant and his wife. At the same
time, rumors about a curse started floating around. The rumors said that some
of their staff began to grow sick, but once they left the Karloff residence,
they immediately recovered. Word started to spread that the Karloff family must
have wronged someone who had then put a curse on them. Unable to maintain their
business under the suspicions of such a curse, the Karloff family handed the
reins over to their friends and quickly collapsed.
The servants left, and before long, Marianne
and Kent were the only ones left in their enormous mansion. Initially, it
seemed like whatever ill intent had taken the lives of Marianne’s son and
daughter-in-law had been content. However, it soon bared its fangs at the
remaining two in the mansion.
The original producers of the textiles from
which the Karloff family’s business had drawn most of its profits had risen in
revolt against the merchants Marianne had left the business to.
The ornate fabrics were produced in what was
originally a small village that Marianne’s husband had happened across some
decades ago. The land there was barren, so they couldn’t raise good crops, and
winter snows would trap them in their own village. With nothing else to do,
they turned their hand to textiles. The Karloff family’s large purchases saved
the village from a sad history of starvation and strained resources. Otherwise,
villagers might have sold their children into slavery.
The textiles they produced had taken some time
to gain popularity, so many around the previous family head had criticized him
for overpaying and driving his own business into the ground. He had just
laughed at that, insisting it was an investment for the future, and he had
continued supplying the villagers with all the money they needed.
More grateful than any amount of money could
account for, the villagers had borne with the heavy-handed nature of the new
merchants out of respect for Marianne, who had apologized to them in person for
the sudden and drastic change in circumstances.
But even if the villagers could stomach the
merchants failing to pay the amount of money they’d agreed on, when the
merchants’ subordinates started getting rough with the young women of the
village, the villagers snapped. Shutting the gates of the village, they refused
to do business with anyone, saying they would only sell to those with Karloff
blood. This had caused no small amount of panic among the merchants.
But of course, the merchants to whom Marianne
had left the business couldn’t just beg her for help—that would cut into their
earnings. Instead, they decided to wipe out the family for good. If the
villagers were unable to sell their merchandise, the village would suffer the
most.
Anyone who stopped to think about it for a
brief moment would realize that such a plan had no chance of working. The
village had spent decades supplying clothing for the Karloffs, their work even
used occasionally by the royals. They weren’t the same destitute village they
once were. Each family there had built up wealth of their own. On top of that,
the Karloff family had sponsored a number of the village children for higher
education, teaching them the know-how of the mercantile world. They already had
all they needed to break into the business world on their own. Their continued
support for the Karloff family hadn’t been out of financial need, but out of
gratitude to the Karloff family head of two generations ago. If anything were
to happen to Marianne and Kent, they’d cut ties with the merchants entirely.
Of course, trying to explain feelings of duty
and respect to someone who would hurt others just to save their profits was
like telling a child that candy was bad for them. They’d snort a laugh at best,
and it was in one ear, out the other.
After about two hours, Geord was back to give
a rough explanation of the information Misha had asked for.
“So, it turns out the party who worked on the
Karloffs’ fireplace was the same one who gifted Marianne that incense burner.
They also have a connection to that suspicious merchant from the south, so
that’s probably where they got the poison. The incense burner that Marianne’s
son liked so much was a present from them as well. That must have been how they
were poisoned.”
The culprit was in fact the one who stood to
benefit most from the collapse of the Karloff family, but not so much so that
their fall seemed unnatural. Some did, in fact, look on the whole situation
with some measure of suspicion, given the culprit’s reputation for being a bit
two-faced, but since the Karloff head and his wife had died from illness, there
was nothing anyone could say.
“So he was an apprentice of the family head
two generations ago...”
“When the Karloff family head retired, he
offered them some support in setting up their own shop, though he didn’t let
them borrow the Karloff name. It seems they were on good terms with Marianne’s
son as well.”
Misha’s face clouded over. It seemed like
Geord had unearthed the worst possible truth.
How do I tell Marianne about this?
A child she had looked after and taught since
their teen years had grown up to kill Marianne’s son and daughter-in-law—and
had even made an attempt on the lives of herself and her grandson. How painful
a revelation would that be for her?
As Misha frowned with a sigh, a heavy hand
patted her on the head. “I can deliver the news if it’ll be too rough for you.”
As much as she would have loved to indulge in
Geord’s kindness, she shook her head. “She’s my patient. I should tell her
myself. I have to deliver her medicine anyway.”
Geord knew she was acting much more confident
than she felt, but he smiled nonetheless. “Then let’s get going. That punk kid
is probably sick of waiting for us.”
At his urging, Misha bundled up the medicine
that she’d made and got to her feet. They had collected all the information
they needed. All that remained was to find out what the patient wanted to do.
Slow but determined footsteps carried Misha
back down the road to the Karloff residence, Geord only a step behind her.
“Oh. So it was him.”
When Misha returned with the incense burner
and explained the situation, Marianne was not as flustered as Misha had feared
she would be. Instead she sat in silence, eyes downcast. Her clasped hands in
her lap trembled faintly.
She had loved that boy like her own son. Of
course she didn’t want to accept his betrayal as a reality.
Misha and Geord watched quietly as she
processed the truth. After a great deal of time, Marianne finally lifted her
head.
“I suppose I need to apologize to the people
of the village. Even if he was skilled enough to do so, we wanted to help him,
thinking it would be no easy task for him to break into a market dominated by
sly and experienced merchants. It seems our aid to him wasn’t warranted in the
least. In fact, all our help did was lead to him hurting people. Well... No, it
wasn’t just about helping him. It would have been too sad for us to just cut
ties with that village. Those fabrics were my husband’s entire life. It looks
like my stupid sentimentality has burdened everyone. I will have to go and
relieve that village of its obligation to our family.”
Though there were tears at the corners of her
eyes, there was no sadness in her voice. Misha couldn’t help but admire the old
woman’s strength. She could only hope she’d be that strong one day.
“That man has committed a crime. Are you just
going to leave him be?” Geord asked, bringing a distant look to Marianne’s
eyes.
“As frustrating as it is, we don’t have proof.
We only have some traces of powder on the fireplace and the incense burner. It
will be quite difficult to prove anything. All he has to do is say he knows
nothing about it. He has enough influence to make that believable. In contrast,
we are just a former merchant family on the edge of collapse. If we try to make
a scene, it will be a mark against our honor at this point. It would only serve
to put us in a bad light.”
“No way...” Misha’s breath caught, taken aback
by the injustice Marianne described. The people she loved had been killed, she
herself had been targeted, and yet Marianne could do nothing but cry quietly
alone. “Is there nothing we can do?” Overcome by a youthful righteous
indignation, Misha turned pleading eyes on Geord.
Suddenly, they heard the sound of people
shouting outside.
“Looks like something is happening.” Motioning
for the others to stay where they were, Geord dashed over to the window.
By the time he peeked outside, everything was
over. The two guards Geord had posted outside had restrained a group of five
men.
“What happened?”
“We caught them trying to set fire to the
mansion, sir. What shall we do with them?”
Common thieves would have no need to do
something so extreme as committing arson. And it wasn’t dark yet—people rarely
did such violent work when it was still light out, meaning their employer had
felt quite rushed.
Geord turned a wicked smirk back on the room.
“Great news, Misha. It seems our culprit has decided to give us all the proof
we need.”
Misha and Marianne could only return his grin
with puzzled looks.
The rest of the day passed like a hurricane.
The attempted arsonists quickly confessed everything to save themselves. In no
time at all, they traced everything back to the merchant they had suspected.
Apparently, a representative of the village was coming to meet with Marianne
personally, so the merchant had panicked and turned to more aggressive methods.
The village had sent letters to Marianne a
number of times, but the mail carriers had been paid off to destroy the letters
before they could arrive. However, it wasn’t so easy to stop someone from
meeting with her directly. If the merchant’s guise as a “good person” were to
come down, all his crimes would be laid bare. He had been desperate to stop
that from happening.
Misha and Geord’s involvement had also been
problematic. Despite traveling mostly in secret, Geord was a high-ranking
official from a foreign nation, and Misha was the daughter of Bluheitz’s own
duke and Redford’s guest of honor. They weren’t the kind of people who could be
handled with a little money under the table.
Once the local lord got involved, the
merchant’s hidden crimes were revealed in no time. The merchant’s attempt on
Marianne’s life was only the tip of the iceberg. In rapid succession, a whole
string of arrests was carried out, but that was a different story. However,
since Marianne had been instrumental in uncovering all the wrongdoing, the lord
had set his own hand to clearing up the malicious rumors about the Karloff
family, which was a nice bonus.
Among all the hubbub, the representative of
the village arrived and was immediately brought to tears witnessing Marianne’s
situation. Not prone to emotional displays, the representative insisted that
she should have relied on them if she was having difficulty. Marianne herself
was quite bewildered by the whole thing.
Once things settled down to some degree, Misha
was invited to the Karloff estate once again, where she was able to give
Marianne another checkup. The mansion looked totally different from her last
visit. The place was full of servants, and the building and the gardens were
clean and beautiful. Misha could have sworn she was in the wrong place. The
villagers had helped out with everything upon hearing Marianne was in distress,
the elderly woman explained with a troubled laugh.
As they moved to the beautifully restored
reception room for some tea, Marianne and Geord were called out by a city
official to help wrap up the case. Left alone, the two children enjoyed some
snacks together, a maid waiting in the wings dutifully replenishing anything
they ran out of. She had worked for the Karloff family in the past, that
connection leading to her marrying into the village. She had returned, bringing
a number of other women from the village to take care of all the cleaning and
laundry.
“It feels kind of weird for everyone to start
calling me ‘young master’ all of a sudden,” Kent said with a shrug. By the time
he was old enough to understand what was going on around him, the mansion was
basically empty. Having had to take care of himself for so long, he was quite
uneasy having others suddenly looking after his every need. Misha had felt very
much the same way on her visit to her father’s mansion, so they were able to
share a good laugh.
“I’ll probably end up moving with granny to
Raylan.”
“Is that the village that was making those
fabrics?” Misha asked, looking toward her feet. Though common enough in the
mansion to slip beneath notice, the beautiful carpet in this room was one from
that village.
“Yep. They’re having a huge argument about it,
saying they can’t leave granny here alone when they owe her so much. I think
she’ll cave pretty soon,” Kent said with a laugh as he bit into another cookie.
Misha smiled as she took a sip of her tea,
picturing that argument in her head. “Makes sense. Have you been there before?”
“Back when my dad was still alive, yeah. It’s
way out in the country. There’s nothing around for miles, but it’s a nice
place. Everyone’s really nice,” he replied, a small shadow at the edges of his
happy expression as the conversation turned up memories of his parents.
He had thought they’d died from a mysterious
illness, but they had actually been murdered with poison. Worst of all, their
killer was someone Kent had known, someone who’d lovingly held him when he was
little, who’d always had candy and toys for him upon each visit. They’d seen
each other less after Kent’s parents died, but they’d still met a few times a
year. It was no wonder Kent felt conflicted.
Even so, Kent had decided to face forward with
a smile. His father had always taught him to face adversity head-on. He’d
always said a good merchant needed an iron will and an insatiable sense of
curiosity.
“So, when I’m a bit older, I’m going to start
working with granny’s friend.”
Misha’s eyes went wide. “You aren’t going to
go with Marianne?”
Kent scratched at his face in embarrassment.
“Well, I am. But I want to be a good merchant. So I need to study a lot. And I
figured learning on the job was better than just going to some school.” His
eyes were sparkling, reflecting a bright hope for the future.
A boy younger than Misha herself had already overcome
his parents’ deaths and was bravely walking forward. He was amazing.
“So, thank you. I’m glad I got to meet you,”
he said. “You saved granny, and I got to figure out what happened to my mom and
dad. I’ll definitely pay you back someday.” Not sure how to take Misha’s
stunned look, Kent raced to get his piece out, then stuffed the last cookie
into his mouth. “Granny’s taking too long. I’m going to go see what they’re
doing.” With that, he dashed out of the room, unfortunately a bit too quickly
for the bewildered Misha to notice that his ears had started to burn red.
“What a strong kid. I should be like that,”
Misha murmured to herself, reflecting on Kent’s words. She couldn’t be happy
the way he could. Just putting one foot in front of the other was still tough
for her.
“Yeah. I’ll keep trying,” she told herself,
forcing her face into a smile.
“If you want to be an apothecary, you have to
always be smiling, even if it’s a bluff. If the patient sees you being uneasy,
they’ll get scared. With all the pain and suffering they’re going through, we
have to at least make them feel at ease.”
Her mother would always say that, stroking
Misha’s hair. No matter how difficult things were, she needed to look like
everything was all right. The unexpected memory of her mother surfacing
threatened to rob her of her smile, but Misha fought to keep it in place.
Right, mom? Even if it’s fake, even if it’s a
bluff, I’ll keep smiling. Then someday, it’ll be real.
In the future, Kent Karloff would grow to
become a merchant whose name was famous not just across Carmine, but across the
whole world. Everywhere he went, he showed great respect and kindness to the
People of the Forest. When asked why that was, he would flash a proud grin.
“Because when I was young, they helped me more
than I could ever repay them.”
Chapter 5: A Small Life, Red and White Memories
Misha reached out and put her arms under the
sunlight streaming in through the window of their carriage, watching it shine
against the braided string of multicolored thread and small glass marbles
wrapped around her wrist.
“You got that from Kent?” Geord asked,
squinting as the light bounced off the glass marbles and into his eyes.
“Yeah. He said he made it from the threads
they use to make their fabrics.”
The multicolored threads were woven together
to make a complex, beautiful design.
“Huh. Looks like it’d make a good souvenir.”
Misha’s eyes opened wide at Geord’s offhand
remark before she giggled. “Kent said the exact same thing. It’s something the
people of that village make just to fiddle with their hands when they’re bored.
They were pretty surprised I liked it so much. I wonder if they’ll start
selling them now?”
Earlier, Kent had noticed a similar cord on
one of the villagers’ wrists, so he’d asked how to make them. The man’s young
daughter had braided his, so the one Kent first saw was quite simple, but once
he learned how to do it himself, he discovered ways to add extra details, such
as additional colors and ornaments like marbles. He had called this one his
“first prototype,” so there would probably be plenty of variations in the
future.
“He saw something new and immediately thought
about how to improve it. Sounds like a businessman at heart.” Geord shrugged
with a small sigh. You could never underestimate the imagination or energy of
children.
“He’s incredible, isn’t he? I have to make
sure I keep up.” Misha smiled, stroking one of the glass marbles.
After traveling for some time, Misha asked,
“Do you mind if I take a bit of a walk?”
They had come to a stop to give the horses a
rest, and Geord and his men were breaking out a portable stove to make some
lunch.
Geord stopped in his tracks, raising an
eyebrow at her. Normally she’d be asking to help out, not to run off on her
own. “As long as you don’t go too far. What’s up?”
“I’m starting to run low on herbs. The forest
here looks like it would be the perfect spot to find some.” Misha’s face was
glowing with anticipation; she was barely able to keep her eyes off the thicket
growing behind her.
“Hmm, I thought you were surprisingly
entranced by the view outside the window. So that’s
what’s been on your mind.”
All this time in the carriage, he’d been
worried that the roughness of the rural roads was making her sick. She was a
tough kid, so he didn’t expect she’d complain even if that were the case. That
was exactly why he’d decided to call an early lunch break.
“Are you okay on your own?” he asked, to which
the restlessly fidgeting Misha nodded.
“I’m pretty used to the forest. I’ll make sure
to stay away from anything dangerous. I’ll be back in about thirty minutes!”
“We stopped a bit early, so take your time.”
Nodding happily at Geord’s reply, Misha
practically skipped off into the underbrush. Seeing her go finally reminded
Geord that this was exactly the environment she had grown up in.
Even if it wasn’t the same forest, it must
have felt familiar. She was well accustomed to moving about in the wild. She
had shot off into the brush like fish freshly returned to the water.
Misha hummed happily as she collected the
herbs she found, pulling them up from the ground. The carriage was quite
spacious, so if she tied up some strings from one end to the other, she’d have
plenty of space to hang and dry the herbs. Having found exactly what she was
hoping for, she resembled a child let loose in a toy store.
“Oh, there’s some bamboo leaves here too. But
I’ll need to boil them right away if I want to use them. I wonder if everyone
will mind waiting...”
Despite her hesitation, Misha nevertheless
harvested some of the rare plant. This was the time of year it just started
sprouting, which was also when its medicinal properties were strongest. It
would serve as a great painkiller. These bamboo leaves could be made into a
paste and applied directly to an injury or into a pill and swallowed to treat
things like headaches, stomachaches, and other internal pains. She’d love to
have a supply.
“Geord and the other knights probably get
injured a lot in the line of duty, right? It’ll be good to have some around,”
she murmured as she picked at the plants.
Before she knew it, she’d filled her basket
with all kinds of plants, and her time was just about up. Lunch was probably
ready.
“I wonder if we can stay the night out here.”
In many ways, it felt like she was leaving
mountains of treasure behind, but she had to keep her promise. It was one thing
if she was a few minutes late, but any more than that and they’d start to
worry.
“I wonder if I can go pick some more after we
eat. Oh, but I have to deal with the bamboo leaves...” Murmuring to herself as
she walked, something strange caught her attention—a faint cry, as if someone
were calling for help. It was quiet, high-pitched, and intermittent, like from
a baby animal.
“A puppy?”
She hesitated only for a moment before dashing
off toward the sound.
“Misha?”
About an hour after Misha left in search of
her plants, just as Geord figured it was about time to go looking for her, the
girl came dashing back into the camp. In one hand she had a basket full to
bursting with plants, and in the other she held her shawl wrapped around
something.
“I’m sorry I’m late. You can scold me later,
but first I have to take care of this little guy!”
After Misha showed him the shawl, he looked
inside to see a small white puppy. Catching a new smell, the little animal
sluggishly opened its eyes and began to growl. Geord didn’t detect it having
the energy to struggle, but he could see a wildness in the dog’s guarded glare.
“Its fur is white, but...is this a baby wolf?”
he asked.
He scrutinized the little bundle in her arms
as Misha stepped closer to the fire, throwing some of the plants she had just
picked into a pot with some water and setting them over the fire. Although
caked with blood and dirt, its fur was definitely white.
“Probably. I don’t know if he was abandoned or
maybe his parents died, but he had fallen in a pit and couldn’t move. If his
parents were around, they would have helped him, so I have to assume the
worst.”
Geord had only ever seen black or gray wolves,
so a white one was almost unheard of. However, closer inspection revealed its
bright red eyes. It must have been an albino. Maybe it had been abandoned by
its pack for standing out so much in the forest.
“Good boy. Here, let me look at your wound.”
Speaking softly to the wolf pup, Misha gently applied some medicine to its
injury and wrapped a bandage around it so that the pup couldn’t just lick it
off. The wolf pup didn’t resist, but it was clearly unhappy. Its snout was
scrunched up, and the poor thing was still growling, but it made no effort to
bite or scratch at Misha.
Puzzled, Geord watched as Misha treated the
little animal. Even if it was a baby, it was strange to see a wild wolf put up
with a human touching it like this. If its legs were hurt, it made sense that
it didn’t try to run away, but he would have expected it to bite Misha when she
touched it.
Misha plucked some of the meat out of their
soup and broke it into small pieces, then fed it to the wolf pup. After eating
its fill, it curled up beside her and closed its eyes. It acted like a
well-trained dog.
“Did you give it some kind of medicine to calm
it down?” Geord asked.
“Of course not. Animals just seem to like me,”
Misha replied with a laugh as she took a bite of bread, finally able to turn
her attention to her own meal.
“But it’s a wild wolf, isn’t it?” She acted
like this was all perfectly ordinary, but this was quite a bizarre scene. It
was honestly kind of unbelievable.
As Geord worked on his own soup, Misha gave a
troubled smile. As mysterious as it was, she really hadn’t done anything
special. She couldn’t explain the wolf pup’s behavior any better than he could.
“Maybe because he’s hurt and weak? I think he
understands I was trying to help him. Probably. We’re not that close, so I’ve
been avoiding touching him as much as I can too.” Glancing back to the wolf pup
at her side, they saw it had opened its eyes again and was staring back. Which
only made sense. Of course it would be wary of them.
“Even so, it’s a wild animal. They tend to get
more aggressive when they’re hurt.”
“Hmm. Probably because I don’t appear hostile?
If I were seriously thinking of eating him, he’d probably run away.”
When she’d lived in the forest, Misha’s only
source of meat had been rabbits and birds that she and her mother caught
themselves. Of course, Misha had handled and cooked them herself as well.
Carnivore meat wasn’t that great, though, and large animals were too much work
to prepare, so she generally kept to smaller animals.
Perhaps sensing the ominous nature of the
conversation, the wolf pup started to whine softly.
Misha giggled. “Don’t worry. If I wanted to
eat you, I wouldn’t be helping you like this.”
Scooping another chunk of meat out of her
soup, she held it in front of the wolf pup. After sniffing at it for a moment,
it chomped down the tiny morsel. With that, the two were on good terms again.
Watching the wolf pup return to its slumber
out of the corner of her eye, Misha asked quietly about their next course of
action. “Our destination is the city just past these mountains, right?”
“Yep. There are actually two ways to get back
to Redford. We can keep going through the mountains like this, or we can take a
bit of a detour and follow the coast. Which would you prefer?” Geord replied
with a smile, sipping at his postlunch tea.
“The coast? You mean, by the ocean?” Misha
tilted her head as she echoed Geord’s words.
Having been raised in the forest, Misha
thought of the ocean entirely as an imaginary place. An ocean was like the
lakes she’d seen in the forest, but many times larger, and the water was salty.
She had only ever eaten dried fish, but the fish that lived in the ocean were
quite different from those that lived in rivers and lakes, and they were quite
tasty.
“The water changes color depending on where it is
and how deep it is. When the wind blows, it makes waves, which can be quite
intense. There are also some strange creatures living there besides fish. Best
of all, the sight of the sun setting into the ocean is absolutely magical.”
Her mother had talked about the ocean once
while they were reading a book. She’d looked like she was having a lot of fun
recounting those memories.
“I’d like to see the ocean.”
Staying in the mountains to keep collecting
herbs was plenty appealing, yet her curiosity for the unknown won out in the
end. Above all, she wanted to see the thing that had entranced her mother.
Geord nodded, taking note of her excitement.
“Got it. It’ll be your first time, so we’ll try and get a ship big enough so
that you won’t get seasick. It’s probably still too cold to do any swimming,
but you can at least try putting your feet in the water. Sound good?”
Hearing their new plans, Misha gave a
celebratory shout for the first time in a long time.
As the carriage rattled its way down the road,
Misha was inside sorting through the plants she had collected and that now
dominated the spacious carriage. While the overpowering smell of medicine would
probably be painful for normal people, it was something Misha had long grown
used to, and its familiarity helped her relax.
While she worked, she glanced down at the
corner of the carriage. The small white wolf pup lay there quietly on top of
some cloth, eyes closed, but the way his ears stood up straight made it clear
he wasn’t asleep.
Only a few hours had passed since Misha had
scooped him up. It was perfectly normal for a wild animal to still be on guard.
Even if he was small enough that a little girl like Misha could carry him in
her arms, even if his pretty red eyes were set in a baby-like face. Misha had
wanted to wash the blood and dirt from his fur too. However, she’d had to give
up when the pup refused to cooperate. Grooming was a way to express affection
between animals.
I wonder when he’ll let me
do that, Misha pondered absently, hands still
working on the herbs in front of her, when suddenly the image of a white figure
sprang to mind.
At the same time, the wolf pup’s bright red
eyes opened and turned toward her, making her stop what she was doing.
Oh, that’s why he seems so
familiar. White hair, white fur...and they both have nearly the same color
eyes. The boy’s were even redder, though.
Once the thought occurred to her, she could
only wonder why she hadn’t thought of it sooner. Returning the wolf pup’s gaze,
she started to smile.
Not just the color—the way he’s so on guard is
the same too.
With a quiet giggle, hoping not to spook the
little wolf, Misha remembered the events of a day long ago.
When Misha turned five, she had finally been
given permission to explore the forest on her own. From that day forward, she
began slowly investigating the area around their house. After about a year, her
search area expanded to places she had never visited with her mother. Places
with awkward footing or steep cliffs, impossible for her mother to visit with
her injured leg, were nothing more than places for Misha to play when she was
on her own.
When she brought back unfamiliar flowers and
plants as presents, her mother would always heap loads of praise on her,
encouraging her to keep up with her exploration. As a result, Misha began
exploring farther and farther away, and for better or worse, there were no
adults around to stop her.
So, when she was walking through the forest
humming a tune to herself...
Huh. Something seems different today.
Following a narrow game trail between the
trees, she suddenly felt confused. It was hard to put the feeling into words,
but the forest felt strange somehow. There were fewer birds singing in the
trees, and there were no animals scurrying through the underbrush, but she
couldn’t tell why that was. Her curiosity drove her onward—to find the source
of this anomaly. And when she did, she found something that didn’t belong in
the forest.
Nestled among the roots of a great tree lay a
small person.
“A kid...?” Misha stared from behind a tree at
the figure not much bigger than herself.
The child had straight, white hair, long
enough to cover the back of their neck, cut straight and clean. Their hair
obscured most of their face, but what little peeked through spoke more of the
round plumpness of youth than the age that white hair would imply.
Misha herself had been raised here in the
forest. The only other people she had met were her mother, father, and her
father’s friends, so “children” and “elderly” were still little more than
nebulous concepts from storybooks for her.
The child was wearing a long-sleeved robe,
plain and unornamented, much like the clothes Misha wore when sleeping. The way
the child lay curled up, legs hidden beneath the hem of their robe, made it
look like they were trying to protect themselves from something.
A small child wearing nightclothes lying alone
deep in the forest—the way they were trying to hide between the roots of the
tree looked odd to someone as young and inexperienced as Misha.
After observing for a while, Misha determined
there was no one else nearby. The way the child lay there entirely filled her
with unease, so she approached slowly. Once she was about two meters away, she
stepped on a small branch, a resounding crack piercing the air.
The motionless child bolted upright at the
sound.
Oh! Red eyes.
Misha couldn’t help but stare in awe at the
color of the child’s eyes, the same bright red as ripe apples. Those eyes,
filled with an abundance of caution and a small hint of fear, stared straight
back at her.
“They’re so pretty...” Misha murmured out
loud, shaking the tense atmosphere.
The child’s stare wavered.
“Who are you? Why is there a kid in a place
like this?” the child asked in a voice, as hoarse and stiff as it was, that
indicated he was a boy. His tone was cold, rejecting, but Misha was more
confused than anything.
“This is where I live. Who are you?”
The boy’s confusion grew more pronounced.
Unconsciously pushing himself back away from Misha, he scowled and gritted his
teeth. At that point, Misha noticed he was using a hand to cover his opposite
arm, which was the same bright red as his eyes.
“Wait, are you hurt?” She dashed forward and
inspected the injury, not giving the injured boy a chance to retreat. Although
shocked by her sudden approach, he wasn’t able to escape before Misha held him
down, rolling up his sleeve to see a ten-centimeter gash on his upper arm. It
wasn’t that deep, and the bleeding had already stopped, but it evidently hadn’t
been treated at all.
“I’m going to call my mom!”
But when she tried to stand, the boy reached
out and grabbed her arm. The boy’s face twisted in pain as he did so, the
sudden movement aggravating his injury, but he pushed past it to shake his
head.
“No, you can’t call anyone.”
“But...” As the boy refused help, now it was
Misha’s turn to frown. The boy’s sudden motion had opened the wound, which
started to bleed. It was definitely not something she could ignore.
“If you’re going to bring someone here, then
I’ll just run away the moment you leave.”
Misha’s frown deepened at the threat. The two
stared at each other for some time.
Oh. He’s just like a hurt animal.
And as she stared at him, she realized why
this scene felt so familiar to her. He had the same aura as the many injured
animals she had encountered in her adventures in the forest: fear, caution, and
an iron determination to cling to life.
Once she recognized that in his eyes, Misha
felt herself relax. It was no wonder he’d run away if she did something he
didn’t like—even if that meant putting his life in further danger. Having grown
up around the animals of the forest, Misha understood that kind of behavior
better than anyone.
Even so, this was a human being. She couldn’t
just leave him be, so she racked her brain for something she could do on her
own.
He’s afraid of something, so he doesn’t want to
see other people. But he’s still willing to talk to me. Is it because we’re
both kids? In that case...
Misha plopped down in front of the boy. “Can I
treat your injury for you?”
“You?” the boy blinked back in surprise.
Searching through her backpack, she pulled out
her lunch for the day, a bottle of water, and a large cloth. Next, she found a
salve for scrapes that her mother had given her and a smaller strip of cloth.
Looking at what she had available, she stopped to think for a moment.
“If I fall and cut myself, I’m supposed to
wash it and then put the medicine on.”
Misha regularly returned home covered in cuts
and scrapes, so her mother had given her that medicine and taught her how to
apply it, but she had probably never imagined this was how Misha would put it
to use. The boy’s injury was much worse than anything Misha had ever
experienced, but this had to be better than doing nothing.
“This will probably hurt a little. Sorry.”
Her face tense, Misha poured a bit of water
over the boy’s wound. Luckily, there didn’t seem to be any dirt or anything in
it, but just to be sure, she used her fingers to clean away the dried blood
around it. As much as it must have hurt, the boy kept quiet, biting his lip and
stiffening as she did her work.
If he cried and started to thrash, it would
probably have startled the young and inexperienced Misha into crying herself,
so this was definitely the correct choice of action for him. He wasn’t biting
his lip and bearing with the pain for her sake, though. His pride as a boy was
at stake.
After exhausting her supply of water, she
spread some of the salve on the smaller strip of cloth, placed it over the
wound, and then wrapped it in the larger cloth to form an improvised bandage.
It looked a little messy, but it was Misha’s best effort. Once it was done, she
breathed a sigh of relief.
“Thanks,” the boy murmured, prompting Misha to
lift her head. The two stared at each other for a moment, Misha looking up at
the boy in surprise while the boy frowned back at her.
Misha felt something new spring to life in her
heart. The gratitude she received from doing something for someone else made
her feel a new kind of pride and joy. The way her heart surged brought a smile
to her face, causing the boy’s eyes to widen in surprise again. She giggled at
him.
“You’re welcome. I’m Misha, by the way. I live
together with my mom in this forest. What’s your name?”
After a long pause, the boy finally answered,
“Ren.”
Unbothered by the curtness of his reply, after
repeating the name silently to herself a few times to make sure she’d remember
it, she showed him the lunch she’d brought with her.
“Are you hungry, Ren? Why don’t we eat
together? I’ll go get some more water, but you can start eating.”
She left a wrapped sandwich on Ren’s lap
before running off with the empty water bottle. Her heart was racing partly out
of excitement at having taken care of someone for the first time, but also out
of anxiety that he would run away once out of sight.
Trying to suppress those feelings, she ran
straight to the closest source of water and dunked her face straight into it,
taking a drink while she did so. The cold water brought the racing thoughts to
a halt. As she pulled her head out of the water, she shook the water from her
face as a puppy would, then she hurriedly filled her bottle. Once finished, she
dashed back down the path she came, returning to find Ren still seated with his
sandwich yet unwrapped, waiting for her to get back.
As she sat down beside him, her breathing
ragged, he startled. Having used her cloth to make his bandage, she had nothing
to dry off with, leaving her face and bangs dripping wet.
“Here, water. I’ve already had some.” Not sure
how to express herself, she settled for just pushing the water bottle toward
him and bit into her own sandwich.
Ren stared at her, amazed and concerned.
She was just going to get some water, so why is
she drenched?
he thought.
He felt it would be better for her to dry off
first. Unfortunately, he had nothing but the clothes on his back. Misha didn’t
seem bothered by her face being soaked, but that was probably just because she
had used her cloth to make his bandage. He cast a guilty look at his arm. She
had used a small knife to cut a strip from some cloth she had pulled out of her
bag.
Well, it’s a nice day out. She’ll dry off soon
enough.
In the end, he didn’t say anything, finally
taking to his own sandwich. Made with some kind of meat and soft leaves, it was
remarkably delicious when coupled with his thoroughly empty stomach.
“Are you sure you’re okay on your own?”
No matter how many times Misha invited him to
go with her, Ren wouldn’t budge.
“I already said I’m not going with you.
Animals won’t come in here, so it’ll be safer than last night. You should hurry
up and go home before it gets dark,” he replied, making no effort to conceal
his frustration with her persistence.
“But...”
Seeing she wasn’t about to leave, Ren sighed
and smiled. “I’m serious, it’s fine. I can rest easy tonight thanks to you
bringing me here.”
He examined their surroundings carefully. They
were sitting in the hollow of an enormous tree about two meters off the ground.
It was a place Misha had found when she first started exploring the forest,
spacious enough for the two children to have plenty of room to spare. Deciding
to make it into a secret base, she had gradually carved into the hollow to make
a flat floor and filled it with leaves and old blankets. It was high enough
that four-legged animals couldn’t climb up to it, and the thick foliage hid it
from below.
“Okay then, I’ll be going. But I’ll be back in
the morning with some food, so wait for me, okay?”
“Okay, okay, I get it,” Ren nodded as the
reluctant Misha finally made her exit.
When she made it home, her mother scolded her
for being late, but Misha was too preoccupied with thoughts of Ren for it to
bother her much. After eating dinner and climbing into bed, those same thoughts
kept her from falling asleep.
Is Ren okay? Is he lonely? He didn’t run away
again, did he?
If she focused, she could hear the voices of
the wildlife in the forest outside. She had never spent a night out in the
forest before—never mind doing it alone.
I hope he’s not too scared, she wished, thinking of his beautiful red eyes.
The next day, Misha collected as much food and
medicine as she could take without arousing suspicion from her mother, then
rushed to the hiding spot, grabbing some wild fruit along the way.
When she saw Ren was still there, she was
overcome by relief, but only for a moment. Misha’s eyes widened as she noticed
his flushed cheeks.
“Do you have a fever?!”
Ren’s face scrunched a bit as if pained by her
shout. Putting a hand to his forehead, she could tell he was burning up.
“Hold on a second!”
Running to a nearby stream, Misha soaked a
towel in cold water and brought it back. As she placed it over his forehead,
she saw Ren relax, unclenching his body as he enjoyed the cool sensation.
“I guess one blanket wasn’t good enough. What
should I do now...?”
“Relax, I’m fine. I’m used to having a fever.”
In contrast to Misha’s mounting panic, Ren was calm and collected. The coolness
in his eyes helped with Misha’s growing panic as well.
Fever... When I have a fever, what does mom do?
When it was raining out, Misha would stay home
and watch her mother make medicine. She would always explain what she was doing
and what the medicine was for while she worked, almost as if she were talking
to herself.
I can’t ask mom for medicine, or she’ll find out
about Ren. What herbs that grow in this season can treat a fever?
She was starting to regret not listening
closer to her mother’s teachings. If she had, she’d be able to help ease Ren’s
suffering. Both her agitation at seeing Ren suffering right in front of her and
her frustration at her past self for not taking what her mother taught her
seriously sent her right back into a panic. She desperately sifted through her
memory for anything that might be useful as she dashed back out into the woods.
Finding a plant whose seeds could help against
fever, she used a flat rock to smash the seeds, then put them in a rough,
handmade cup that she kept at the hideout. To finish, she added water and mixed
it all together.
“Drink this.”
Ren scowled as he saw the now unsettlingly
green mixture.
“It’ll help your fever. My mother taught me
about it, so it’s definitely true.”
With Ren still clearly suspicious, Misha took
a swig from the cup. Despite being quite bitter, as far as medicine went, the
taste was bearable. Struggling to keep the tears from her eyes, she finished
half of the cup and returned the cup to Ren.
“C’mon. It’s not poison or anything.”
Though he hesitated for a while, eventually he
relented and took the cup. His brow immediately furrowed as he started to
drink. It tasted as bad as he’d expected, or maybe even worse. On top of the
bitter, acrid flavor, the seeds used to make it had just been pounded to pieces
on a rock, so there were still plenty of hard bits in it, and it reminded him
very much of drinking plants.
Still teary-eyed from her own experience with
the drink, Misha handed over a small candy to help him clear the flavor from
his mouth. It was one of her favorites, brought as a gift from her father not
long ago. It was made from nectar instead of sugar, which—despite the rich
flavor—left a delightful aftertaste. She had only a very small number of them,
so she strictly limited herself to one a day. Even so, she didn’t think twice
about giving one to Ren.
While they both sat eating their candy, Misha
wordlessly took a look at the injury on his arm. The skin around the cut had
turned a bit red, but she sighed in relief to see there was no pus. If the
wound had gotten infected, treating it would have been way out of her league.
Exhausted from his injury and fever, coupled
with the side effects of the medicine she had just made for him, Ren had
already started nodding off, so Misha hurriedly reapplied the salve with a
fresh bandage.
Ren slept for about half a day, his fever
gradually declining. Relieved he was making progress, she had him drink plenty
of water and cut up some fruit in easy to consume chunks. The fever left him in
somewhat of a daze, his combative attitude from the previous day nowhere to be
seen. She had to admit he was much cuter this way.
By evening, Ren’s fever had come down quite a
bit.
“Looks like that gross medicine has been
helping.”
“If you’re going to talk like that, then I
have another present for you.” Misha smiled at Ren’s abrasive attitude, handing
him another cup. Naturally, it was filled with yet another thick green liquid.
“Uhh...isn’t this cup filled higher than it
was last time?”
“It looked like it worked well, so I made
double for your evening dose!”
“Oh, come on. You can’t just give me any
random amount!”
Despite his complaining, Ren eventually gave
in and drank it down. He had already experienced the effectiveness of this
medicine. Actually, he found it had worked much faster than any other medicine
he had taken.
If only it didn’t taste like death...
After a sigh, he dutifully forced down the
contents of the cup, struggle that it was. Misha watched with a gentle smile,
handing him another candy as he finished.
As the sun set once again, the two children
had much the same conversation as they’d had the night before. Misha was
reluctant to leave Ren alone, while Ren quickly grew exasperated attempting to
get Misha to go home.
“Thanks to someone’s terrible medicine, my
fever is mostly gone. It’s from the cut on my arm anyway, so it was kind of
expected. And you gave me medicine for the pain too, remember?”
Ren shrugged, revealing he had seen through
Misha hiding something else in the “doubled” amount of fever medicine.
Misha hung her head as she was called out. She
had figured she could trick him into having something additional in the
medicine because of how dazed he had been that morning. She’d been afraid he
would be on guard again once he was feeling better, so she had wanted to avoid
having to go through the experience of drinking it herself again.
“I mean it was even greener, and the flavor
was even worse. If you’re going to make people drink mystery stuff, at least
explain what you’re giving them,” he said with an exasperated smile.
“I’m sorry. Thank you for taking it anyway,”
Misha apologized, passing over another candy. She was really happy to hear that
he trusted her enough to drink the medicine even without knowing what was in
it. “Okay then, I’m going now. Make sure you get lots of sleep, okay? If you
get hungry, I’ve left some fruit here for you.”
As Misha reluctantly climbed out of the tree,
Ren called out to her again.
“Thank you. I really appreciate it.”
Misha stared back, mouth agape at his honest
gratitude. There was no sign of his old wariness in his expression, just a
bright grin lighting his red eyes.
It’s like watching a flower bloom...
His face was even pretty when he made fun of
the stupid look on her face—so pretty that she forgot
to get angry. Shyness pulled at her instead, which she tried to laugh off.
“See you tomorrow!” Waving goodbye, she ran
home, not turning back to see Ren’s response.
The next morning, Misha returned with arms
full of food to find her hideout empty. The blanket she had left for Ren was
folded neatly, and on top of it was a single earring the same bright red as his
eyes. Without that, she might have thought the whole experience had been a
dream. The piece of jewelry was something Ren had worn. Taking it in her hands,
she started to cry a little. It wasn’t quite sadness, but the little Misha
didn’t have the words to express the tight feeling in her chest.
A bump in the road jostled the carriage hard,
bringing Misha back to the present. She had apparently spaced out for quite a
while, as the plant in her hand had grown soft from the heat of her hands.
Hurriedly laying it out on the windowsill, she turned her attention to the
small bag hanging around her neck as a good-luck charm.
She pulled out a small teardrop-shaped object
from inside, an earring just the size of her fingertip that shone bright red in
the sun. It was a simple ornament, just a red stone carved into the shape of a
teardrop, but it was something that Ren had left for her that day.
She’d never ended up wearing it. She didn’t
feel like she could openly wear a gift from someone whose existence she had
kept a secret, and it felt strange to wear it without its pair anyway, so she
had kept it hidden.
It was a thank-you from her first ever
patient. Although she felt embarrassed when she thought back to how crude that
treatment had been, she knew that experience was what had convinced her she
wanted to be an apothecary. It was a precious memory, one she couldn’t share
with anyone.
“I wonder how he’s doing...”
The earring’s only reply was to continue
shining with its brilliant red light.
“Sounds like they’re having fun again,” Ryan
Lou Redford chuckled as he read over the latest report.
That was enough to bring a scowl to Tris’s
face. “So, what has that idiot done now?”
Unfortunately, his position didn’t give him
the luxury of ignoring the report, so he reluctantly asked the king to share.
Ryan responded by tossing the letter to him.
“That’s quite impolite, you know,” Tris chided
him before opening the letter and scanning it, his face likely to freeze into a
grimace. “What does he think he’s doing?! Does he realize he’s in a foreign
country?!”
Geord had stuck his nose in some family
squabble that had ended up causing a huge string of arrests across the city.
There was an official letter of thanks from the lord of the city too, something
that made Tris livid.
“Naturally, he got the lord of the city
himself on his side. Must have been a countermeasure to stop you from getting
too angry at him,” Ryan laughed.
“This is hardly a laughing matter. Now that
he’s gotten involved in this issue, someone is going to have to clean up after
him...”
“And that someone will probably be you, won’t
it?” Ryan pronounced over Tris’s mumbling complaints.
“Looks like I’m losing yet another holiday...”
Tris hung his head, defeated.
Feeling bad for him, the king offered some
words of consolation. “On the bright side, it wasn’t like he did anything
wrong. It looks like they’re honestly thankful. I don’t think it’ll be such a
big issue.”
“Then can I ask you to handle it, Your
Majesty?”
“Me? No way. Sounds like a pain in the ass.”
Of course, the moment it looked like things might get turned around on him,
Ryan immediately cut down Tris’s hopes that his attempt at consolation might
have had any actual meaning behind it.
“So, when is he coming back?” Tris asked with
a smirk, imagining the thorough verbal thrashing he’d give Geord on his return.
Ryan passed over another letter.
“Apparently Misha hasn’t seen the ocean
before, so they’re going to be traveling by boat?!” Tris yelled in disbelief.
“And they’re spending another two or three days in port for sightseeing?! What
is that idiot thinking?! Is he planning on causing even more problems?!”
The king’s office was filled with a lone man’s
agonized cries.
Chapter 6: The First Time at the Sea
Misha and Geord spent another two days
rattling down the mountain road. By the third day, they had stopped climbing
and were instead following a road that ran along the side of the mountain.
“Misha, wake up. You’ll be able to see it
soon.” Geord’s voice from outside the carriage pulled Misha from her dozing.
See what...? She was still in a bit of a daze when Geord knocked on the window.
“You can see the ocean now!”
“Really?!” Misha hurriedly threw open the
wooden window of the carriage.
A wave of familiar forest scents rushed in to
greet her, but as she looked down the road they were traveling, she saw a small
city. Beyond that, blue—one that was much different from the sky—stretched
onward.
“That’s the ocean...?”
It was far enough away to not feel quite real
yet; however, it was certainly the sight she had been hoping for. Entranced,
she had been staring out the window for a while when a small thump landed on
her legs. Looking down, she saw a pair of bright red eyes looking curiously up
at her.
In the end, the wolf pup that she had helped a
few days earlier stayed with them. His leg injury would take quite some time to
heal, and she couldn’t wait around for that. She and Geord had considered
setting him free once his leg was healed, but they’d be quite far from his home
by then. There was no guarantee a wolf his age would be able to survive in
unfamiliar territory. He could easily end up wandering into another predator’s
territory and receiving a rather violent welcome.
Now that Misha had spent the time and energy
to help him recover, she couldn’t just send him off to his death. Nature was
cruel. Ultimately, after piling up a healthy number of excuses, Misha decided
she’d keep the wolf pup with her.
Wrapped in a towel and placed in the carriage
along with her, the wolf pup originally stayed huddled in the corner, clearly
quite wary of her, but after she had taken care of him for a few days, he
seemed to come out of his shell a bit, recognizing Misha as his new protector.
Wolves were already social animals. There were
enough examples of them cooperating with humans in the past to prove it was a
feasible arrangement.
The wolf, now named “Ren,” quickly took to
curling up on Misha’s lap. Those who witnessed it were about as shocked as they
were relieved, but they all received their new traveling partner favorably.
Above all, Misha’s demeanor became much gentler when she was playing with him,
retaking something of the youthful innocence one would expect from a girl her
age.
Even though Misha didn’t realize it herself,
everyone around her was well aware of what had happened to her mother, and the
shadow cast over her face from time to time was a great cause of concern for
them. Ren might’ve been an unnecessary mouth they now had to feed, but his
presence offering Misha some comfort was enough for the adults around her to
accept the burden.
“I heard water in the ocean is really salty!
Let’s taste it together.” Stroking Ren’s fur, now fluffy and soft thanks to the
daily brushing Misha subjected him to, Misha turned a shining smile on the wolf
pup.
Though he didn’t know why, Ren could tell his
caretaker was in a good mood, so he responded with a happy bark and a wag of
his tail.
The seaside town they visited was lively and
bustling. It had a large port which took in ships from foreign countries,
making it a central trade hub for Bluheitz. The city was filled with people
with unfamiliar looks and skin colors, and if she stopped to listen, she could
pick up a number of unfamiliar languages in the air too. Stalls in the street
had wide arrays of unfamiliar fruit and exotic ornaments, all things Misha had
never seen before.
Watching the city pass by from the window of
the carriage, Misha quickly found herself dying to jump right into the middle
of it all.
“It’s like a huge festival out there!”
Though plenty of the cities they passed
through were lively enough, this one buzzed with a whole new kind of life.
Geord laughed as Misha leaned out the window,
trying to take it all in. “Relax. Once we get to the inn, we can go exploring a
bit. Don’t fall out of the window.”
Misha hurriedly pulled herself back into the
carriage, face flushing. Not from the excitement this time, but from Geord
pointing out just how childishly she had been acting. Sitting up properly as if
to say her previous behavior had all been in his imagination, she forced a
composed expression. Unfortunately, the way her eyes kept darting back to the
window meant she wasn’t hiding her brimming curiosity in the least.
Doing everything in his power to avoid
bursting out laughing at her antics, he kept a close eye on what was catching
her attention as he drew up a plan of where to take her later.
“Wow! It’s huge!”
The first place they visited was the beach.
With the ocean visible from their room in the inn, Misha had been nailed to the
window, so it had been an easy choice. The ocean stretched as far as she could
see, the place where it met the sky blurring as if the two were dissolving into
each other. Taking a deep breath, her nose was filled with a strange and
unfamiliar scent.
“Oh, right! The water! We have to taste the
water!”
After enjoying the breadth of the ocean for a
time, Misha remembered her other objective here, and trotted down to where the
waves lapped against the shore. The sensation of the white sand giving way
beneath her feet as she walked was unexpectedly fun. Crouching down, she picked
up a handful of the stuff, watching the tiny particles flow back down to the
ground between her fingers. Within the sand she found a small shell. She
beamed.
“Mr. Geord, can I take my shoes off?”
Watching from a bit of a distance, Geord waved
his assent, then he turned to one of his men and tasked him with buying a pair
of sandals for her. Her sturdy leather boots were great for traveling, but they
didn’t suit spending time in a nice city.
Oblivious to the exchange happening behind
her, Misha slipped out of her footwear and slowly approached the water again.
The sensation of her feet sinking down and the sand pouring in between her toes
brought a happy giggle out of her. The early summer sun had lent the sand a
pleasant warmth.
As she finally made it to the water’s edge,
the sand turned much softer where it had started soaking up the ocean. Even
that change was something new to Misha, so she proceeded carefully through it.
And then she made it to the water. Her heart
skipped a beat at the sight created by the waves reaching up the beach, then
receding back into the ocean.
“It’s so beautiful...”
The glittering waves rushed up onto the beach,
pushing the sand into all kinds of different shapes, only for those beautiful
designs to be washed away by the next wave moments later, replaced with
something entirely new. It was a brilliant piece of transient art.
Misha was frozen in place, charmed by this new
experience, when Geord stepped alongside her.
“Why don’t you try getting in the water?”
Misha looked up at him. Geord himself found
his breath catching, the slight flush to her cheeks and the bright shine in her
eyes making her appear more mature than usual.
“Yeah. I will.” Whispering to herself, she
turned her attention back to the water, allowing Geord to finally realize he
had been holding his breath.
He sighed heavily, feeling his heart racing.
He was old enough and experienced enough to know the light sweat he was working
up wasn’t from the early summer sun.
“Seriously?” he muttered to himself, sitting
down in the sand as Misha approached the water.
The sensation in her toes as she reached the
waves was quite cold, but she quickly forgot that, lost in play. Every time a
wave came it pushed the sand with it, slowly burying her feet beneath it. She
would then wiggle her toes, kicking up the sand to dance away with the receding
wave and revealing her feet once more.
She repeated the same thing over and over,
lost in the sound of the waves. It was her first time hearing the music of the
waves, yet it was like a comforting blanket wrapped around her.
Suddenly, she could have sworn she’d heard a
voice mixed in with the sound of the water. Her mind surfaced once more, but as
she lifted her head, a glint caught her eye. Something in the water was
reflecting light, but it wasn’t the water itself. Reaching for it, she grabbed
what turned out to be a small, hard stone.
“A blue...rock?”
The glittering rock was about the size of her
fingertip. The light shining through it was recast in a deep blue, as if trying
to mimic the ocean itself. Though the beauty of the little stone held her
attention for a while, once again she heard a voice calling out between the
sound of the waves.
Looking around, she saw only Geord and one of
his guards. She couldn’t imagine the voice belonged to one of them, so she
strained hard to listen again, but she could only pick up the movement of the
water.
“Maybe I imagined it?”
At that point, Geord did call out, asking if
it was about time to go see the city. Misha hurriedly stepped out of the water,
slipping the stone into her pocket without a thought.
“I was just planning on grabbing something to
eat as we walked around town. Is that okay?” he asked.
“Yes! I noticed there were a lot of delicious
smells as we were going through the city!” She dried her feet with a cloth
offered to her before slipping into her new sandals. She all but danced through
the streets as she followed Geord back into the city.
The thought of delicious food completely wiped
the mystery of the disembodied voice from her mind.
Meanwhile, in her pocket, the blue stone
continued to faintly glow.
“So...lonely...”
Chapter 7: An Encounter with the People of the Forest
Misha came to a surprised stop once they made
it to the market’s entrance. She’d thought she had a good idea of what it would
be like after seeing it from the window of the carriage, but being in the thick
of things was another experience entirely.
Tons of people were coming and going. Words
from all kinds of different languages filled the air. There were colorful
fabrics with mysterious patterns, tools she had never seen before, jars and
vases in bizarre, unique shapes—all kinds of things packed in with barely
enough room to breathe. Of course, plenty of fruits and vegetables were present
too. Taking in the busy sights was quite fun. On top of all that, Misha’s
excellent sense of smell picked up the tantalizing aroma of freshly cooked food
and the exotic scents of foreign perfumes. It was a sensory overload, leaving
her very much at a loss.
But she stood overwhelmed for only a brief
moment. It took no more than a few seconds for her burgeoning curiosity to take
over. The adults following her watched with warm smiles as her eyes began to
sparkle.
“So, my lady, where shall we begin?” Geord was
first among all of them, lending his voice a dramatic flair and offering Misha
an arm.
Misha blinked in surprise, but she quickly and
happily accepted the gesture, all but jumping on him. “Food! I want to eat
something. If this city is famous for something, then I want to try that!”
“Got it,” Geord laughed, unable to contain
himself at her energetic response. In short order, he escorted Misha over to a
corner of the market mainly containing food stalls.
Seafood skewers, fried meats covered in all
sorts of sauces and spices, all sorts of dishes featuring grains, a bright red
soup in which snow-white dumplings floated, a thin dough wrapped tight around
piles of meats and vegetables... There were all kinds of foods she had never
seen before. After taking a look around, she decided to start with the steamed
buns, one of the many things she hadn’t seen before. About the size of her own
hand, the warm bun was softer than bread. Taking one in both hands, she bit into
it to find it filled with a mixture of ground shrimp and fish with some
vegetables. The unexpected level of deliciousness had her swinging her feet
from atop her seat like an excited child.
Watching in amusement, Geord offered her a
drink. The chilled mixture of various fruit juices was refreshing, making a
great match to the strong flavor of the steamed bun.
“Here, try this too. It’s really good,” Geord
said, offering her a plate of grilled fish on skewers. A quick bite revealed
they were also covered in salt and other spices, though the fatty fish itself
had a strong enough flavor to keep up with all the seasonings.
“So yummy!” Misha blurted out with a wide
smile.
Her enthusiasm was infectious; Geord’s guards
started bringing her all kinds of food one after another. Taking a small bite
from each dish offered to her, she was full in no time.
“Aww, I couldn’t make it to dessert,” she
groaned, gazing longingly at the stalls selling various sweets.
“I’m sure you’ll make room in your belly while
we’re walking around town,” Geord said with a laugh, patting her on the head.
That brought another smile out of her as she popped back to her feet.
They walked through the market, looking over
all sorts of goods from other countries and piles of rare fruit, when Misha
suddenly came to a halt.
Geord glanced at what had caught her
attention. “Herbs, huh?”
There was a white tent, in front of which were
baskets of dried leaves and seeds as well as some that were hung up, still
drying. The inside of the tent was fairly dark, so they couldn’t see what was
inside from the street.
“Is this an apothecary? I’ve seen these herbs
before, but I don’t know this one. They look like gilet seeds, but...” Misha
mumbled.
A hoarse voice answered from inside the tent.
“Those are laban seeds. They’re good for stomach pain. They look much like
gilet seeds, so amateur apothecaries often get them confused. I’m impressed you
spotted the difference.”
An amused old woman with white hair popped out
of the tent. Her hunched over posture and wrinkled face spoke of many years of
experience, but the light in her eyes was like that of a young girl.
Once she saw Misha, the woman smiled and
bowed. “Oh, what pretty hair and eyes! I haven’t seen the like for quite some
time. Thank you for the blessings of the forest.”
Misha’s breath caught. That was a secret
greeting her uncle had taught her when she was very young. He’d told her that
if anyone ever greeted her like that, she should try giving the appropriate
reply.
“If you do it right, you might just make a new
friend,” he had said with a laugh.
But he had also made her promise to keep it a
secret from her mother. It had been her first time hiding anything from her mom
before, so it had been an exciting lesson. Of course, her mother had picked up
on Misha’s suspicious behavior immediately, and so she’d thoroughly chewed out
Ryne when Misha wasn’t around. She had probably never imagined Misha would be
left on her own so young.
Now that Misha knew about the People of the
Forest, she realized that greeting was probably connected to them. Although it
was something she wasn’t supposed to know, not having grown up among them, Ryne
had taught it to her on a whim, and now that secret lesson was going to bear
fruit.
Misha hurriedly returned the woman’s bow, then
closed, opened, and linked her fingers together. She had needed to practice a
lot to get the confusing, rapid-fire movements right. She then put her hands
over her heart and closed her eyes.
“Thank you for the affection of the earth.”
There was silence for a time.
Oh no, did I do it wrong? Or was the woman not
doing the secret greeting?
Heart racing, Misha finally opened her eyes to
see the old woman giving her a delighted smile. Making a circle with her thumb
and ring finger, the old woman waved her hand twice.
“And for life from pure water. A pleasure to
meet you, little lady loved by the forest.”
“A pleasure to meet you!” Misha answered after
a short pause.
That was the old greeting she had expected,
phrases to link the People of the Forest even after they had left their home to
travel the world. Those able to complete the ritual correctly were seen as
comrades. Excited at the prospect of meeting someone from the People of the
Forest that wasn’t her own family for the first time, she stared closely at the
old woman.
“But...your eyes aren’t green,” Misha said,
confused.
Her hair turning white was one thing, but the
old woman’s eyes were a deep gray. Geord had said People of the Forest had
blond hair and jade eyes, but no matter how she looked, Misha couldn’t find the
slightest trace of green.
The woman divulged her secret with a sly
smile. “My husband had the same jade eyes you do. He passed away a long time
ago, though.” She then glanced over at Geord over Misha’s shoulder. “Despite
happening to know a lot about herbs, I didn’t learn any of their secret
techniques, so I’m unfortunately just a little old lady, nothing special.”
Geord grinned sheepishly, releasing the
tension that had built up in his body. He had been on guard after seeing the
confusing exchange between the two, entirely unable to predict what was about
to happen, but the woman’s playful banter immediately set him at ease. Still,
he couldn’t help feeling a little excited at the
prospect of meeting a third person from that forest.
I guess it was all a misunderstanding, though, he thought.
He relaxed, tuning out entirely from the
discussion of herbs that followed.
Misha, on the other hand...
“What’s this one called? What does it do?”
Looking through the old woman’s collection, Misha became a nonstop barrage of
questions. This was a port town, after all. Rare plants and herbs from this
country and many others were all collected here in one spot. Misha’s instincts
as an apothecary were fully alight.
The old woman seemed delighted to indulge the
little girl’s boundless thirst for knowledge. As Misha’s questions sent her
deeper and deeper into the tent, neither she nor Geord—watching from the
entryway—noticed the old woman craftily leading her away.
Within the small shop, watching Geord out of
the corner of her eye, the woman confirmed Geord didn’t intend to step inside.
She pushed Misha to the side, where they’d be mostly concealed by the large
array of herbs. Misha’s back was still partially visible, so Geord would likely
not panic and come inside.
“Listen, and answer me quietly. Where are your
parents? You weren’t kidnapped or anything, were you?” Although her face
remained calm and gentle, her rapid switch to a serious tone took Misha by
surprise.
But the little apothecary could tell the
woman’s eyes were filled with concern for her, so she shook her head. “My
mother has passed away, but I still have a father. I’m on my way to study in
another country.”
The woman spent some time gauging Misha’s
reaction, looking for signs of dishonesty. Eventually, she acquiesced with a
small nod. It didn’t seem like the girl was being taken against her will, and
neither her attire nor demeanor indicated anything was amiss. Misha seemed to
be telling the truth.
When this girl had first appeared in front of
her store, the old woman had doubted her own eyes. Children this young among
her people were almost never allowed to leave the village. To the old woman’s
eyes, Misha should still have been living hidden from the world, under the
village’s protection. She also seemed entirely defenseless; it didn’t look like
the girl knew any of the techniques to protect herself. While she did have that
sharp-eyed man and his men escorting her, considering the laws of the People of
the Forest, things were still quite strange.
“I see. Did your parents not teach you how to
hide yourself? Walking around with your hair and eyes visible is begging for
trouble.”
From what Misha had said, the old woman
concluded that Misha’s mother must have been from the People of the Forest. Her
death must have been sudden and unexpected too, as otherwise she couldn’t
imagine a mother leaving her child in the care of outsiders.
She made a small mourning gesture for this
woman unknown to her. Those who wandered far from the village often died
without anyone knowing. They took their lives into their own hands; with that
freedom also came consequences. Nonetheless, the old woman could only imagine
the regret that this girl’s mother had felt at leaving behind such a young
daughter.
“Do you know anyone from there besides your
mother? I can’t promise anything, but I can try to get in touch with them for
you,” the old woman whispered, grabbing some random plants and pretending to
show them off. From outside, it would have looked like the lesson was
continuing.
Misha’s eyes all but glowed. There was only
one other person she knew from the People of the Forest: her uncle, who visited
only once every few years. She knew he would worry when he came to visit their
home and found it abandoned, but she had no way to contact him.
She had thought of leaving a letter behind for
him, but she’d hesitated to leave such an important letter unattended in the
wilderness. Above all, she thought it was unwise to leave evidence connecting
herself to the People of the Forest where anyone could find it when Misha still
knew next to nothing about them. She suspected her father wasn’t actually aware
of her uncle’s visits.
“I have an uncle. He travels around by
himself. He visited us every once in a while.”
“Do you know his name?”
“Not his full name. He told me to call him
Uncle Ryne.”
The old woman’s eyes went wide. She narrowly
managed to keep herself from shouting. “What?! Wait, does that mean you are
Leyas’s girl?!”
“You knew my mom?!” Now Misha’s eyes went
wide. She had never expected to hear her mother’s name in a place like this.
“Of course I did...” The woman’s eyes started
to tear up. She gripped Misha’s arms, so hard that it honestly hurt, but Misha
was too focused on the woman’s eyes to try and shake her off. After staring at
each other in silence for some time, the old woman shook her head. She let go
of Misha and apologetically rubbed where she had grabbed the girl.
“I’m sorry. I was just shocked to hear that
name after so long. I have so much I’d like to talk to you about, but I don’t
think we have the time.” Following the old woman’s glance behind her, Misha saw
Geord was starting to get restless with the two of them staying inside for so
long. “Come back tomorrow morning. I’ll get everything ready by then. Tell your
guards anything you like. Maybe you’re coming to pick up some herbs. He won’t
know better anyway.” The woman snickered, all traces of tears gone from her
eyes.
She then started pushing Misha on the back,
urging her outside, but Misha couldn’t keep herself from asking, “How did you
know my mom?”
“We were friends. We were always together.
Right up until she left the village.” The woman’s whisper was filled with
loneliness, a desire for times long gone.
But as many questions as that raised, Misha
didn’t have the time to ask them. Gently but forcefully, the woman pushed Misha
out of the store.
“Looks like you got a bit carried away,” Geord
said teasingly as Misha was pushed out into the now blinding sunlight.
“Yeah... There was a lot of rare stuff in
there. Sorry for making you wait,” she mumbled in reply, thankful for the
bright light. Now any strange expression she wore would look like it was
because her eyes needed some time to adjust.
“I’ll have your order ready for you by
tomorrow, so come by whenever you’re free,” the old woman called out after her
as she left.
“Thank you!” Misha hurriedly turned and bowed
her head.
“Oh, I forgot. One second.” The old woman
dipped back into the tent, emerging again with a large cloth. “Here, use this
to cover yourself.” She then used it to wrap up Misha’s long hair behind her
head, making a pretty headpiece for her.
She then turned to Geord, who had been quite
taken aback by the sudden gift. “We wouldn’t want to attract any unnecessary
trouble, would we? You’d better be careful too.”
Geord straightened up at the unexpectedly
sharp look from the woman.
“I imagine you can’t do much about her eyes,
but surely you can think of something for her hair. Think about it a bit.” The
obvious irritation in her voice had Geord at a loss for words.
Of course, if he knew what the People of the
Forest looked like, it only made sense other people would too. As the old woman
suggested, they could avoid a bit of danger by hiding those features from
others. He was a bit disappointed in himself for not thinking of that sooner.
“Thank you,” Misha said, getting a shrug from
the old woman.
“My husband struggled quite a bit. He got sick
of it, and so he shaved his head, but that’s hardly possible for a young girl
like you. That head scarf will serve for now, but you should go find a cute hat
while you’re in the market.”
She then waved them off, urging them to leave.
As much as Misha had a thousand questions to ask her still, it didn’t seem like
the old woman was willing to entertain them. However, she had told Misha to
come back the next day, so she’d have had another chance.
Pulling herself together, Misha started
searching through the market again. They hadn’t even seen half of it yet. There
were plenty of things to grab her interest, and it would be a waste if she
didn’t enjoy herself to the fullest while she had the chance.
With that in mind, her steps became a bit
quicker, hoping to cram as many new experiences as she could into the remainder
of the day.
The old woman sighed as she watched the little
girl disappear into the crowd. She had never expected a meeting like this.
Slowly stepping back into her tent, she took a seat behind a mountain of herbs.
“So... Ley is gone...”
The soft murmur was similar to—but not the
same as—the hoarse voice she had been speaking with earlier. Wrinkled hands
covered her face. Tears poured from between her closed fingers, images of that
happily smiling girl stark in her mind.
“I won’t regret it,” her best friend had said
at only sixteen years old, leaving the village with the man she loved.
The two girls had grown up together, learned
everything together, and dreamed of traveling the world together
when they grew up. But just like a dream, it had vanished the moment Leyas had
found that man injured on the beach.
“Were you happy? Did you live life to the
fullest?”
So often she had wanted to ask her friend
that, but she couldn’t get over the betrayal she’d felt, and so she’d never
managed to honestly face Leyas again. She figured someday she’d fall in love
herself, and when she did, she’d understand why Leyas had made her choice. Once
she did, she would be able to face her friend again.
But now more than a decade had passed, and
Leyas had already left this world behind. Regret overwhelmed her.
“No fair. Why did only you get to visit her,
Ryne?” she moaned, thinking of her other childhood friend. Within a village
full of those who opposed her decision, Ryne alone had stayed on Leyas’s side
until the last moment, seeing her off with a smile.
After a good, long cry, the “old woman” lifted
her face again. Her bright, youthful eyes had lost their gray, now shining an
obvious jade.
“Right. I need to start getting ready.” She
then stood up straight, the almost ninety-degree bend in her back vanishing.
“Ugh, I lost the color in my eyes. Looks like it still needs work. I’ll have to
pester the researchers again,” she murmured to herself, looking into the mirror
at her side. “Looks like the makeup is still holding strong. Yeah, it would be
problematic if a few tears were enough to wash it off.”
The “old woman” stepped deeper into the tent,
quick and firm steps revealing her true age. It was like the tears, once shed,
had washed away the sentimental regrets overwhelming her. After rustling around
in the back for a time, a young woman with brown hair and eyes emerged from
where the old woman had disappeared.
Bringing inside the herbs and plants from
outside the shop, she pulled down the curtain, closing the store.
“Okay, I’m off, granny! See you later!” she
called back into the tent, stepping outside and quickly disappearing into the
market crowd.
Chapter 8: Dance for the Dragon God
It was only a coincidence that she’d heard
anything. Sitting in the shadow of a building, Misha had stopped to rest her
feet and enjoy a drink that she had bought. As she did, she picked up the sound
of distant drums and flutes among the tumult of the market.
“What’s that?” Misha murmured, prompting Geord
to strain his ears.
“If you’re curious, should we go take a look?”
They basically had no plans at all, merely
wandering around the market at random, so there was no problem if curiosity
took them on a small detour.
“Yeah, let’s go see!” She nodded happily,
setting out after the noise.
Taking side streets leading off from the
market, they gradually made their way through the city. Passing through the
streets crowded with residential buildings, they wound around corner to corner
based entirely on the direction of the music—until they came up on a sudden
embankment.
Taken by surprise, Misha ran up to the side,
the unexpected sight of the sea drawing her close. The water was right beside
them. Fishing boats of all sizes were lined up along the embankment.
Geord urged her away from the water. “This
way, Misha.”
Following the embankment down, they quickly
came to an open square where a large stage had been built. There were ten or so
people in it, and they seemed to be responsible for all the noise.
“What are they doing?” Misha asked, tilting
her head as she watched the performance.
The stage was filled with children smaller
than she was. They were all playing drums or flutes, and they appeared to know
what they were doing. In the center, two people were dancing, strips of cloth
fluttering from their hands.
“Ah, it’s that time of year,” Geord said,
something finally clicking in his head as he watched the performance at her
side.
Misha looked up at him. “What time of year?”
“In hopes of excellent fishing hauls and the
prevention of accidents at sea, people dedicate a dance to the Dragon God. I
think it’s supposed to be done by kids that are ten to twelve?” Geord closed
his eyes, sifting through his memory. Misha turned her attention back to the
stage.
“They’re only ten, huh? They’re pretty good.”
“Aren’t they?! This year especially!”
Misha jumped at the sudden shout from behind
her. She had been so focused on what was happening onstage, she hadn’t realized
someone had approached from behind. Spinning around, she found a grinning boy a
full head shorter than her.
“You don’t have to watch from all the way back
here. Come closer! This is the last rehearsal before the real performance, so
they’ll be in full costume today.” With a friendly smile, the boy pushed her
closer to the stage. “Someone is here to watch!”
Before she could get a handle on what was
happening, she was brought to the front of the stage and given a space like
some kind of honored guest.
“Are you sure this is okay?” Misha asked,
sitting in the offered chair amid the sea of people busily working. She was
clearly an outsider here, so she didn’t feel particularly comfortable.
“During the actual performance there will be a
lot more people watching, so it’ll help to have some strangers here to get them
used to having an audience. It honestly really helps to have people watching!”
The boy that had dragged Misha there sat down beside her. Misha was quite taken
aback by his maturity. “Anyway, that’s what our teacher said.”
She couldn’t help but giggle at his follow-up
comment. That was enough to help her relax.
“I’m still too little to participate, but I’m
definitely going to be one of the dancers next time. I’ve already started
practicing.” Unbothered by her laughter, the boy turned his admiring eyes back
to the stage.
The kids with instruments had moved to the
side of the stage, getting ready for their performance. They all wore simple,
unadorned white shirts and pants. A white headpiece hung over their heads to
mostly obscure their faces, but what few expressions Misha could see underneath
were quite serious.
Oh. Standing onstage is a big deal for them,
isn’t it? she
wondered, pleased.
“In that case, I’d be happy to watch.”
“Good! It’s really pretty.”
A single loud thump rang out from one of the
drums. The noisy atmosphere around them immediately went quiet. The drumbeat
continued in a steady rhythm, and before long that drum was the only sound they
could hear. Soon, the sound of a flute was added, then a xylophone. One by one,
instruments were added to the performance, each new sound like a wave.
Among the grandiose music, two figures
emerged, one from each end of the stage. One was a boy with blue ribbons
fluttering from his white clothes; the other was a girl wearing a slightly
old-fashioned dress. That said, it had clearly been tailored to make it easier
for her to move in. It also had a number of ribbons tied to it, making it so
that each time she turned, they fluttered out to look like a blooming flower or
like the wings of a fairy.
The two dancers began their routine. After
watching breathless for a while, Misha quickly realized that the dance was
telling a story. Of meeting, falling in love, and then...
It was plainly obvious why there were high
hopes for the performance this year. The quality of the music and the dancing
was far beyond what anyone would expect from a group of kids around ten to
twelve years old. In particular, the girl dancing had an incredibly artistic
way of moving. Though no one spoke a word, her facial expressions, the way she
stretched her fingers—each and every small movement of her body spoke volumes.
The passion she expressed in her dancing lifted everyone else onstage to a higher
level with her.
Misha and Geord murmured over each other.
“Amazing...”
“Impressive...”
The boy at their side swelled up with pride.
“That’s my sister. She’s always wanted to be a dancer, so she’s been learning
since she was really small. I want to be like her someday, so I’m learning with
her,” the boy explained, not taking his eyes off the stage for a moment. It was
clear how much he respected his sister. Misha could only imagine how happy the
girl was to have a little brother that looked up to her.
That thought brought up memories of her own
half brother, images which she hurriedly drove out. It felt too presumptuous to
make that comparison, never mind how depressing the reality was. They had only
met once, and considering his attitude toward her, she could hardly call them
real siblings. From Misha’s perspective, he was more distant than a stranger,
someone who just happened to share blood with her. She could hardly call
herself his older sister.
Feeling dark thoughts coming on, she
immediately stopped herself from thinking, turning her focus back to the
performance in front of her. As she immersed herself in the story unfolding
onstage, the murk in her mind gradually started to recede. She allowed herself
a small bit of relief at that as she enjoyed the story.
“Amazing. I really don’t know what to say.
It’s amazing!” Misha cheered once it was over.
“Yeah. I’ve seen lots of performances, but
this is definitely one of the best. They could even go on tour.”
The children shared embarrassed grins at Misha
and Geord’s praise. Although they had received plenty of positive reinforcement
from their parents and teachers as they’d practiced, having such a glowing
reception from strangers was still a big deal. The happiness that gave them
inspired a new confidence in them for the real performance.
“Is that dance based on a story?” Misha asked
as the thought came to mind.
The children shared glances before
explanations started pouring out of them.
“It’s the Dragon God’s love story!”
“The Dragon God came up onto land to play and
he fell in love with a maiden.”
“The maiden loved him too, but other people
tried to stop them.”
“It’s a really sad story.”
“It’s not sad at all! The two get to go back
to sea together!”
Everyone talking over each other made it all
but impossible for Misha to absorb any of what she was being told, prompting
her to turn to Geord for help. Not wanting to intrude on the conversation the
children were having, Geord had stepped away to talk with the other adults, but
seeing her confusion, he came back to Misha’s side.
“No one can understand you if you talk over
each other like that. Who knows the story best?” he prompted.
The children looked back and forth, uneasy at
the sudden arrival of an unfamiliar adult. After a short time, the girl who’d
been dancing stepped forward.
“It’s based on a legend that’s been passed
down around here,” she said, shy and quiet. No sign of the bold aura she had
onstage when she was dancing remained. If she hadn’t been wearing the same
outfit, they probably never would have guessed she was the same person. But if
she was able to dance the story so passionately, it only made sense that she
knew it better than anyone else.
As quiet as she was, her explanation was clear
and precise, and even the noisier kids stopped what they were doing to listen
to her.
Long, long ago, when this city was still a
small fishing village, there was a maiden, beautiful inside and out. Everyone
in the village treasured her dearly.
One day when she had grown up, a young man
washed ashore nearby. He was also very beautiful, and the maiden fell in love
with him at first sight. The man was injured, and when he awoke, he couldn’t
remember anything. Assuming he had been shipwrecked in the storm the night
before, the villagers took pity on him and decided to help. Naturally, the
maiden worked very hard to look after him.
The man quickly fell in love with the maiden
too. The villagers were a bit wary of him at first, since they had no idea who
he was or where he was from, but once he recovered, he started working hard to
repay the villagers for saving him. Gradually he worked his way into their
hearts. They all watched as the relationship between the two blossomed. Time
passed, and they eventually decided to get married. The villagers celebrated
happily alongside them. They would have the wedding ceremony on the next full
moon.
At the same time, the local lord’s son heard
rumors about the maiden’s beauty, and so he came to the village; he also fell
in love at first sight. In an attempt to win the maiden for himself, he had the
man she was to marry thrown into prison for crimes he didn’t commit. He then
told the maiden that if she were to marry him, he would let the man go.
The maiden cried, and cried, and cried. She
didn’t want to marry anyone other than the man she loved. But at this rate, he
was going to be executed despite doing nothing wrong. In the end, her desire to
save him won, and so she agreed to the terms.
The lord’s son was overjoyed, and he promised
to set the man free. However, fearing that once free, the man would try to take
the maiden back, the lord’s son had his guards tie him up and throw him off a
cliff into the sea.
Oblivious to all this happening, the maiden
prayed for the man’s safe return as she prepared a wedding dress for herself.
Eyes filled with tears, she made mistakes over and over, pricking herself and
leaving her white dress covered in little bloodstains.
The day of the full moon arrived, but as the
wedding progressed, the maiden found herself unable to bring herself to say the
vows the priest offered her. Enraged at her unwillingness to cooperate, the
lord’s son told her about how the man she loved had been thrown into the sea.
“The man you love is dead.”
Shocked by the sudden revelation, the maiden
ran out of the temple and to the cliff from which he had been thrown, and she
immediately threw herself into the sea after him. The people chasing after her
could only cry out in sorrow as they watched it all happen.
But as she disappeared beneath the waves, a
miracle occurred. The water below began to shine, and the man rose from the
water, the maiden in his arms. The man she had fallen in love with had actually
been the Dragon God in human form.
After falling in love with her, the Dragon God
had wanted to take her home with him, but after growing so close with the
villagers, and seeing just how much they treasured her, he had been loath to
take her away from them. Instead, he’d resolved himself to live on land with
them.
Seeing the two they thought dead were alive,
the villagers all celebrated. After the Dragon God punished the lord’s son for
his lies, he and the maiden finally married. The two returned to the sea, where
they would protect the villagers from the dangerous waters.
“So, to thank the Dragon God for his
protection and to celebrate their happiness, we perform this dance.” A soft
smile rose to the girl’s face as she finished her story.
Misha sighed in admiration. “So the Dragon God
loves this city, then.”
The storyteller nodded happily. “Yes, I hope
so. I really love this story, so I’ve always wanted to do this dance,” she
replied, eyes shining and hands clasped in front of her chest.
Misha grinned, recognizing that exact same
light from the eyes of the girl’s younger brother.
They both really have something they admire.
The children invited Misha to watch the real
performance they would be giving in a couple days, at which Misha turned to
Geord. He was the one in charge of their trip, so it was really up to him.
“Why not? It’s not like we’re in a hurry.”
Geord could practically hear a certain someone
screaming back in Redford as he said that, but Misha’s face lit up, totally
oblivious to what was happening behind the scenes.
“Then I’ll definitely be there!”
The children cheered at her proclamation. They
invited her to come watch their practice the next day as well, so Misha decided
she would bring some kind of present for them. Her plans to get something the
children would like from the market had her in a bit of a giddy mood.
All the while Geord watched from the
sidelines.
Kids really do best around other kids, don’t
they?
Chapter 9: At Sunrise
The world was blue. The wavering light made it
clear she was underwater, but strangely enough, she could still breathe fine,
giving Misha a vague understanding that she was in a dream.
Hearing the faint sound of sobbing, she spun
her head to find where it was coming from. She found someone sitting in the
sand, wearing loose white robes. He had long hair that faded into a deep blue
to match the water around them. Although she couldn’t see this person’s face,
she could instinctively tell it belonged to a man.
He was holding someone in his arms—a person in
a beautiful lace white dress with a matching veil, reminiscent of a wedding
dress. Pressing the veiled head to his chest, he held it tight as he cried, as
if trying to protect the person in his arms.
Anyone’s heart would break at the sight.
Between his sobs, the man kept repeating someone’s name, but Misha couldn’t
quite hear it.
Oh... He must have lost someone he loved.
She knew what that was like; she had heard the
same grieving sobs from another person recently.
Don’t cry, she tried to say, but no matter how she tried, she couldn’t get the
words to come out. She wanted to walk over and put a comforting hand on his
back, but she couldn’t move a muscle. All she could do was stand there and
watch him in his grief.
As if the man’s sorrow were contagious, Misha
soon began crying herself, her tears floating away into the sea.
Don’t cry... Don’t cry...
If only there was a way for her to comfort
him, but she was frozen in place and voiceless.
I know what you’re going through. It’s really
hard to face that alone...
But she couldn’t do anything. All she could do
was stand there and watch the sad, lonely figure as he sobbed.
Misha’s eyes snapped open.
Disoriented from sleep, she slowly turned to
look at the side table next to her bed, on which gleamed a small blue stone. It
reflected a gentle, beautiful blue. Somehow, it made her feel sad.
Still sluggish, she pushed herself up and
picked up the stone. After a bit of glimmering, the stone lost its light.
Were those your memories? Misha asked in her heart, staring at the darkened stone.
There was no answer, but she sensed she was on
the right track.
In her dream, she had seen a blue-haired man
crying in the wavering light underwater.
“Who was that?”
The stone was silent.
Now fully awake, Misha snuck out of the inn
and trudged her way to the seaside before even the sun had risen from its
slumber. The sky above the ocean was just starting to change color, so it
likely wouldn’t be much longer. Ren had woken up and followed her out and was
now frolicking around in the waves. His leg still hadn’t been in great shape
the day before, so he’d stayed behind at the inn. He seemed thrilled to be out
and about again. Misha smiled as she watched him play, the small blue stone
held tight in her hand.
She had picked it up without much thought, but
now she felt like she needed to return it to the water, but something was
holding her back. Now that the ocean was in front of her, she hesitated to
actually let it go, and so she just watched the waves coming and going.
What am I even doing?
It would be easy to just write it off as an
ordinary dream, born from the story she had heard the day before.
Realistically, that sounded like the most likely possibility.
After walking down the beach for a time, she
found someone else standing there. It was a girl, fairly close in size to Misha
herself, staring out at the sea.
“Iris?” Misha called out to her, recognizing
her from the day before. She had been the one who had performed that beautiful
dance.
“Oh, Misha.” Iris turned to her with a gentle
smile. Her soft expression had a way of warming the hearts of those who saw it
too. “What are you doing up so early?”
“I woke up and just couldn’t get back to
sleep. What about you?”
“This is my morning routine. I really like the
time just before sunrise,” she murmured, turning back to the sea.
“Mm...” Unable to think of what to say next,
Misha stepped alongside her and watched as the sky slowly started to lighten.
“What did you think of that old story?” Iris
all but whispered, her voice barely making it to Misha’s ears over the sound of
the waves. “Do you think the Dragon God found happiness?”
Memories of her dream immediately came to
mind, then vanished as quickly as they had come.
“I...don’t know. If it happened like in the
story, then I guess so?”
Iris’s eyes twinkled at Misha’s noncommittal
answer. “The story never mentions the name of the maiden. We have no idea who
she was. It was almost like someone was trying to hide something. Every time I
hear that story, for some reason it makes me really sad. Ever since I was
little.” Though there were no tears in the dancer’s eyes, Misha somehow got the
impression that Iris was crying. “Now that I’m older, I understand. The Dragon
God just loved her so much, it hurt... That’s so sweet. Though it’s probably rude
to talk about a god like that,” she said, giving Misha a bit of a start.
The grown-up, mature expression on such a
young girl’s face made her look like an entirely different person for a moment.
“So, I want to tell him that meeting him,
falling in love with him, made the maiden really happy. That’s what I want
people to see from my dance. But I don’t know if he’ll ever see it,” she
trailed off, and the two were quiet once again.
Misha was still at a total loss for words.
Though Iris was younger than her, Misha still felt as though this younger girl
was a grown-up she should aspire to be like.
As they stood in silence, the morning sun
slowly rose, stealing Misha’s breath away. Night was departing.
Iris suddenly lifted her hands above her head
and stretched, then turned to Misha with a laugh.
“Sorry for the weird story. I don’t know what
brought that on. I’ve never even told my mom about it,” she said, suddenly a
bit shy. The strangely mature demeanor had completely vanished.
After Misha promised to watch their rehearsal
again, the two parted ways, Iris needing to get back to help with the
preparations for breakfast. Calling Ren back from the water, Misha then slowly
made her way back to the inn.
Why do I feel so gloomy?
Absentmindedly responding to Ren’s attempt to
play with her, Misha’s mind sank deep into thought.
That old legend, her dream, Iris’s story—they
all mixed together, becoming a mess in her head. She felt like everything would
sit nicely if she could just sort them all out, but there was still one piece
missing.
“Misha! Where were you?!”
All of her pondering vanished when she made it
back to the inn to find Geord standing out front, obviously angry.
She had been up so early that the staff at the
inn hadn’t been awake yet, so she hadn’t been able to leave a message. In any
case, she had planned to be back before anyone else woke up. She hadn’t thought
her morning stroll would cause any worry.
“Sorry. I woke up early, so I went to watch
the sunrise.” Misha knew from experience that trying to make excuses to angry
people was like trying to put out a fire with oil, so she quietly hung her head
and apologized.
Geord heaved a sigh. “If you’re going
somewhere, you have to tell me. The duke entrusted your safety to me. If
anything happens to you, I’m the one who has to answer to him.”
Misha looked up at him in surprise. Though she
could tell he had plenty more to say, Geord left it at that. She had expected
at least an hour of lecturing, so the rapid resolution had left her a bit
disoriented. But at the same time, his short reply had drawn a greater feeling
of guilt from her than any lecture would have.
“Okay. I’m sorry. I won’t do it again.”
Hearing a much more honest apology out of her
this time, Geord smiled sheepishly and patted her on the head.
“As long as you understand. Let’s have
breakfast. The bread they serve here is incredible.”
At Geord’s urging, they made their way to the
dining hall. After apologizing to the other knights who had left to search for
her, she was finally able to start eating.
After eating breakfast and taking a quick
break, Misha remembered her promise with the old woman the day before. Peeping
outside, she saw the sun still wasn’t very high in the sky.
“What time do the stores in the market open?”
“Some of them sell food for breakfast, so I’d
guess a bunch are already open,” Geord replied, confused why she’d asked that.
He sipped his tea.
Misha’s shoulders slumped.
I guess it’s too early to go.
Even if the elderly woke up earlier, she
couldn’t imagine the woman opening the store this early. Besides, it was an
herb shop, not one selling food. One would normally expect it to open up later
in the day.
I should have asked her for an exact time to come
back. Agh, my stomach’s in knots.
Misha knew next to nothing about the People of
the Forest. Her mother had been an apothecary, and so was her uncle who visited
from time to time, but she had never heard the actual name
of their people. Everything she knew about the People of the Forest came from
Geord. She was endlessly excited at the thought of having an opportunity to
talk with someone who had firsthand experience with them.
I guess mom and dad met because she took care of
him when he was injured. The old lady said mom left the village...so maybe dad
can tell me a bit more.
Misha sighed, shaking the thoughts from her
head. Thinking back to how her father had been when she left, asking about her
mother now would feel too much like digging into a fresh wound. He would
probably need a bit more time before he could comfortably talk about their
past. Honestly, Misha felt the same way.
Geord watched with a pang of sadness as
Misha’s anxious excitement settled into a quiet stillness, her eyes fixed on
the cup in her hands.
Every once in a while, she would suddenly slip
into this state—sometimes in the middle of a conversation, sometimes while just
chewing the scenery. It wasn’t hard to guess what—or who—she was thinking of
when it happened.
Geord was a veteran of the battlefield. He had
experienced losing good friends and subordinates that had shared all kinds of
joys and hardships often enough. It was a terrible thing to experience. But
that was among people who knew they were risking their lives, who knew death
was always one step away. He couldn’t say his experience and Misha’s were the
same. Having someone so irreplaceable torn away from you without warning was a
kind of pain he couldn’t fathom.
In that respect, Geord had no idea what he
could say to comfort her. All he could do was wait for her to rouse herself
from the mire of her own thoughts. The glances his subordinates gave her made
it seem like they felt the same way, but they similarly said nothing. As his
men returned to their previous conversation, watching Misha out of the corners
of their eyes, Geord wanted to sigh, albeit at himself as much as at them.
“We’ve got nothing else to do, so why don’t we
go to the market for now? The morning market is more for the local people than
tourists, so it’ll be quite different from yesterday. I think you’ll enjoy it,”
Geord said, bringing Misha back to reality.
“How is it different?”
“They’ll be selling stuff like fruit,
vegetables, and fish. It’s early, so everything will be really fresh.”
“Okay. Sounds good. No point in just sitting
around in the inn, is there?” Misha nodded, her interest piqued.
She loved nothing more than seeing new things,
and there were plenty of those to discover here in the world outside her
forest, and he loved that about her.
“All right, then. Let’s head back to our rooms
and get ready, then we can head out.”
Misha shot to her feet, the thought of what
exciting new things waited for her today carrying her back to her room. She
scooped Ren off the ground, tired as he was from their morning walk, and
carried him back. She hurried her way down the corridor, her previous
melancholy pushed aside for now.
Chapter 10: A New Companion
The market was bustling once again. Colorful
fruits and vegetables were lined up on display, and homemakers could be seen
across the market haggling with the shop owners. The stalls selling prepared
food had shifted to things like porridge and sandwiches with ham and
vegetables, food that was smaller in volume but nonetheless satisfying.
Misha walked around wide-eyed, taking in this
entirely new face of the market. While her previous trip through the market had
seen plenty of dried fish, the ones on sale now were freshly caught, gleaming
in the sun. Some of them were even still alive, as one began to flail when
Misha approached to take a closer look. The sudden movement elicited a small
shriek from her and a round of laughter from those around her.
“Boil and salt them, and they’re quite tasty.
Want one?” a shopkeeper called out to her half in jest as Misha stared,
entranced with a bucket filled with angrily snapping crabs.
Misha sighed, nearly despondent. “I’d really
like to try one, but we’re staying at an inn, so we can’t cook for ourselves.”
The unexpected reply took the shopkeeper off
guard, who previously thought Misha must have been a child of a tourist. He had
been expecting a cute response, like “You boil them while they’re still
alive?!” He hadn’t expected such a logical answer.
Misha was well acquainted with the idea of
taking the lives of animals to feed herself, so it didn’t even occur to her how
cruel it might sound. In her mind, good manners dictated that she thoroughly
enjoy the meal after catching them.
“These shrimp are huge! They’re totally
different to what you find in rivers,” she said, still grinning wide as she
pointed to another bucket. The shopkeeper laughed, accepting his defeat.
“If you take it to that stall over there and
say you bought it from me, they’ll cook it up for you. I’ll make it cheap—sound
good?”
“Huh? Are you sure?” Misha’s eyes sparkled as
she turned to the stall that the shopkeeper indicated.
I just ate breakfast...but one shrimp is fine,
right? But, hmm, one just for me would be unfair. I should get some for Geord
and the others too...
Deciding it was okay, she happily began
negotiating with the shopkeeper, to everyone’s benefit.
“It’s so good! We had the same thing
yesterday, but this tastes totally different!” She all but cried for joy as she
took her first bite of the shrimp that had been cooked right in front of her.
It had a fresh tenderness to it, and was much juicier than what she had eaten
the day before, not to mention its rich, full-bodied flavor, a sweetness drawn
out to perfection by the salt it had been roasted with.
“It’s so juicy...”
With one hand holding her shrimp skewer and
the other on her face, Misha’s ecstatic expression caught the attention of more
than one passerby, gradually drawing more people to the stall. Out of nowhere,
a huge crowd descended, much to the delight of both the shopkeeper selling the
shrimp and the young man doing the cooking. Misha, of course, was so focused on
her snack that she didn’t notice any of the commotion she had just caused,
which pulled a laugh out of Geord as he bit into his own shrimp skewer.
As such, she ended up quite confused when the
shopkeeper came out with some boiled crab after she finished the shrimp. She
tried to decline the gift, but he was quite happy to insist that she take it,
saying he had “taken a liking to her.” With some convincing from Geord, she
finally gave in and accepted the crab.
Not quite able to peel the shell off herself,
the shopkeeper did it for her. She gave an exclamation of wonder as his hands
glided over the crab, effortlessly removing the hard shell as if by magic,
revealing the tender meat lying beneath.
In no time at all, Misha found herself
surrounded by people eating shrimp and crab.
Ah, so this is a pretty popular place, she thought, rubbing her
stomach.
“I think I ate too much...” She had only been
planning on eating a single shrimp but had ended up getting carried away,
rewarded with a stomachache. “Let’s go see the old lady. She’ll probably have
something for my stomach,” she muttered as she walked ahead, getting a chuckle
from Geord as he followed behind her.
Geord had tried to stop her from stuffing
herself, but the crab had been so delicious that she had ignored him, leaving
her with no right to complain about his laughter. That said, she certainly
didn’t enjoy the teasing from him.
When they got to the old lady’s shop, Misha
was perhaps a bit more forceful than necessary when she asked him to wait
outside, saying she and the woman in the tent would be discussing secrets about
medicine that he wasn’t allowed to hear.
Medicine could be used for nefarious purposes
if that knowledge fell into the wrong hands, so while Geord and his knights
weren’t happy about it, the request was natural enough that they agreed and
took up spots outside the front.
Good. Now I don’t have to
worry about what we talk about, Misha thought, but
guilt did still prick at her insides.
Once she passed through the hanging herbs and
into the tent, she called out a “Hello? It’s me—from yesterday.”
She found a path just barely wide enough to
walk. The tent was filled with all kinds of plants, and since many of them
didn’t like the light, sunlight wasn’t let in nor was there much light at all.
“I’m over here. Thanks for coming.”
Following the voice, Misha rounded a pile of
herbs to find a small table with two chairs. The old woman sat in one of them,
wearing a black hooded robe.
“Your guards are outside, I presume?” she
asked, motioning Misha to take a seat.
Misha nodded as she complied. “I said we had
apothecary things to talk about.”
The old woman chuckled. “Very good, very good.
Ordinary apothecaries and learned doctors have plenty of secrets to keep from
common people.”
Misha examined the old woman’s face in great
detail. Her hood covered it almost entirely, save for her chin sticking out.
While the slightly hoarse voice was exactly the same as the one Misha had heard
the day before, something seemed off about her. She seemed like the same
person, but something was wrong.
The old woman stopped once she noticed Misha’s
searching gaze. “You’ve got a sharp intuition. That’ll keep you alive for a
while.” But the voice that she heard didn’t belong to an old woman, but someone
actually quite young.
As Misha sat taken aback by the sudden change,
the old woman slowly drew back her hood. Long, platinum-blonde hair spilled out
of it, framing a pair of eyes the same deep jade as the forest.
Misha stared dumbfounded. She had never seen
someone with the same color hair and eyes as herself except for her mother and
her uncle. But as happy as she was to see it, she was far more shocked.
“But...why? Yesterday...”
The “old woman” chuckled, sounding quite a bit
younger. “I was in disguise. These colors stand out a bit too much. They’re too
famous. See, look.” As she said that, the old woman put a hand on her face.
Misha gave a small cry as the woman peeled away her skin, only barely keeping
it from becoming a scream, understanding that screaming would bring Geord
running inside.
As the old woman finished peeling away her own
face, she revealed the soft, smooth skin of a young woman that lay underneath.
“Let me introduce myself again. My name is
Miranda. I grew up together with Leyas.” Something in her soft smile reminded
Misha very much of her mother—that same smile her mother took on when she’d
surprised her.
“Oh, right. Nice to meet you.” Misha was
experiencing firsthand how slowly someone reacted when they were entirely
bewildered. She could do little more than stare dumbly at the transformation
she had just witnessed.
Until her reflexes kicked back in.
“How did you do that?” she asked.
Her curiosity was so much a part of her it had
taken on a life of its own, leaving the stunned Misha behind.
“It’s a kind of tree root. If you boil it and
work it a bit, you can apply it directly to your face to mold another face on
top. Basically, it’s a really convincing mask. Once it dries, it feels like
real skin, and it stays on pretty well if you don’t rip it off like I just did.
Unfortunately, it doesn’t let sweat through, so if you wear it for too long,
it’ll start to get stuffy. I’ll teach you how to make it sometime.”
As she explained, Miranda stretched out the
mask and handed it to Misha. It was kind of unsettling to be holding the face
of the old woman she had talked to the day before.
“I’m sure you could dye your hair or use a
wig, but what about your eyes? How did you do that?” Misha’s questions
continued. After all, Miranda’s eyes had been gray just yesterday.
As Misha leaned forward excitedly, Miranda
fished out a couple small glass bottles from beneath her desk. “A few drops of
this in your eyes and your irises will change to become the same color. Then
you add this one, and it fixes the color in place. But this color comes off
really easily with water. Tears will wash it away too.”
Putting the bottles near the lamp, Misha could
see she had blue, brown, and the same gray from before.
“Did the People of the Forest make these too?”
Misha had never heard about people being able to change the color of their
eyes. On that note, she had never seen someone transform their face by using
such a thin mask before either. She couldn’t help but feel like these kinds of
things far exceeded the job description of an apothecary.
No wonder kings and nobles are so interested in
them. Knowledge like this could transform a whole kingdom.
“They’re things we came up with to try and
keep ourselves hidden. No matter how much we mix with other people, our hair
and our eyes never change. If I were to have four children with someone with
black hair, three of them would look just like me. It’s almost like a curse.”
Despite Misha’s strained expression troubling
Miranda, she had to continue the explanation for the girl’s sake. “What we
understand about how people pass down physical traits to their children doesn’t
seem to apply to us. Or maybe our blood is just that strong. We don’t know for
sure ourselves. Either way, some people will hunt us down if we walk around
showing off who we are. Many people who’ve left the village in search of new
knowledge have been lost that way. Even though all we want to do is learn how to
treat injuries and illnesses...”
Miranda closed her eyes, suddenly slipping
into a story about their people’s history. Misha reflected on the difficulties
her ancestors must have faced. Still, even with all that hardship, they had
managed to accomplish such extraordinary feats. She supposed it was rude to
call that “scary.”
Now that she thought about it, it was possible
her mother had never told her anything about the People of the Forest because
she was afraid a naive child might end up sharing that information with someone
she wasn’t supposed to. If others could find out where their village was
located... Misha didn’t even want to think about what kind of tragedy might
ensue.
“But if you have such good disguises, does
that mean I could have been meeting People of the Forest all the time and just
not noticed?”
Miranda shook her head. “Maybe for others, but
I don’t imagine you would have. You’ve been traveling without hiding anything
about yourself, right? If any of them had seen you, they’d probably have tried
to talk to you like I did. Even if they couldn’t, they’d have reported having
found you, and you’d have a whole bunch of them guarding you by now.”
“Guarding me?” Misha echoed, finding the
thought a bit strange.
Why would they want to protect me? Just because I
have the same color hair and eyes? I’d still be a total stranger.
“The strong bonds tying us together as a
people are what have kept us alive thus far. Sometimes they are a bit annoying,
but always having a home to return to is what allows us to travel the world so
freely.”
Misha’s heart throbbed. She had never seen
that “home” for herself, only heard about it in stories. Had her mother not
wanted to go back there?
Sensing the atmosphere was turning dark,
Miranda shifted the conversation in a different direction. “Well, I guess there
are people who slip through the cracks of our information network anyway. Like
your uncle, for example.”
Misha stared in shock.
“Ryne is definitely the most free-spirited of
any of us,” Miranda said. “Normally you aren’t allowed to leave the village
alone until you’re twenty, but he decided he had nothing more to learn at home
and went off exploring on his own for the first time at fifteen years old.
Especially after Leyas left, he started spending more and more time away, and
we heard from him less and less often. But when he came back every few years
with plenty of new knowledge to share, no one could bring themselves to stop his
travels.”
Misha couldn’t help but laugh; Miranda’s
description of her uncle matched perfectly with her memory of him.
“This isn’t something to laugh about, you
know. Because of the way he is, we have no way of contacting him in an
emergency like this. Anyway, I’ve told the others to tell him what happened if
they find him, but I have no idea when they’ll reach him. Sorry.”
Misha quickly shook her head. “No, please
don’t worry about it. I never thought it would be possible to get in contact
with him anyway! I’m just happy if it can happen someday.”
“Oh? That is good to hear.” Though she still
seemed a bit troubled by it all, Miranda was pleased nonetheless. And with a
smile still on her face, she proceeded to drop another bombshell.
“So, getting to what I really wanted to bring
up, I was thinking of going with you to take care of you until we can get a
hold of Ryne. What do you think?”
This time Misha’s surprise was entirely
audible.
Chapter 11: Miranda of the Forest
Standing outside the medicine shop, Geord and
his men were engaged in casual conversation when suddenly they heard Misha
shout from inside. Without a moment’s hesitation, he spun and dashed into the
shop, heedless of the mountains of herbs he knocked over as he cut through to
Misha’s side as quickly as possible. Grabbing Misha from where she sat, Geord
pulled her back and immediately confronted the woman in the black robe seated
opposite her, all before the girl had time to close her mouth. Suddenly staring
at the back of her escort, Misha was more than a little bewildered. As two
other knights rushed in behind her to protect her on all sides, Misha finally realized
what was happening and started tapping Geord on the back.
“Mr. Geord, don’t worry! She’s not an enemy!
She didn’t do anything bad!”
She tried to push her way forward again, but
one of the knights behind her grabbed her shoulder and held her back. While
Misha’s panic intensified, Miranda simply laughed, cool and steady.
“Oh my, you all move quite fast now, don’t
you? Such excellent bodyguards you are.”
Geord glared wordlessly at the woman in front
of him. Platinum-blonde hair, jade-green eyes—her features were too stark for
her to be anything other than Misha’s kind. But even if he saw quite a bit of
Misha in her mischievous smile, he wasn’t about to let a stranger get close to
his ward. Recognizing he didn’t have the room inside the tent to wield a sword
properly, he instead drew his knife and took a guarded stance.
“No need to be so worried. It’s just like
Misha said. I have no intentions of hurting her. You know how tight-knit the
People of the Forest are, don’t you? The shopkeeper here told me she met one of
our children, so I came running. That’s all.”
Her expression soft but bright, Miranda spread
her hands wide to show they were empty. After hesitating for a moment, Geord
lowered his knife.
Meanwhile, Misha’s shoulders dropped as she
realized Miranda was presenting herself as someone entirely different from the
old woman she had been earlier. Just how many faces did she have? And what
would she do if Geord demanded to see the old woman?
While Misha’s mind raced through these
questions, Miranda began to introduce herself again. “A pleasure to meet you,
good knights. My name is Miranda. I have come at the old shopkeeper’s request
as a representative of the People of the Forest to take this young girl into
custody,” she said with a graceful bow—not that it eased Geord’s concerns.
“Take her into custody? We are escorting her
at the wishes of her father to the next nation over. Even if you claim she is
one of your people, we can’t just hand her over to you,” he declared.
Miranda nodded. “Yes, Misha has told me a
little of her situation. I will not try to take her from you. But in exchange,
might I ask that I be allowed to accompany you on your journey?”
The sudden request sent a wave of
consternation through the knights.
Geord now had two People of the Forest in
front of him. What was he supposed to do? Bringing both of them back home with
him would certainly make the king happy, but there was no guarantee this woman
was an ally. He knew full well how fickle the People of the Forest could be.
And yet, he could very much see her following them even if he refused to take
her with them. He sighed inwardly.
If that was the case, it would be better if
she was out in the open where he could keep an eye on her, rather than sneaking
about in the dark outside his vision.
“Umm, Miranda is a good person!” Misha blurted
out the moment Geord opened his mouth, evidently taking Geord’s silence as a
bad sign. She was determined to help Miranda get permission to join them. “She
was friends with my mom. They grew up together. Please, I want to ask her about
my mom!”
Misha finally pushed herself in front of
Geord, looking up at him with desperation in her eyes. She didn’t want to lose
the chance to talk to someone who had known her mother.
Geord sighed, patting her on the head. “I get
it. No need to get so worked up. I wasn’t going to turn her down anyway.”
Misha’s face flushed a bit, as she felt very
much like she was being treated like a small child, but her embarrassment was
quickly replaced with delight at the news Miranda would be traveling with them.
“Thank you, Miss Miranda.”
Miranda started to laugh as Misha bowed her
head. “Are you sure you shouldn’t be saying that to the man who gave me
permission to join you?” she replied, gently reaching out and putting Misha’s
disheveled hair back in order.
After indulging in that pleasant sensation for
a moment, Misha spun and gave Geord a bow as well.
“Thank you for letting her come with us.”
“My pleasure,” Geord replied, unable to stop
himself from grinning.
“Now that that’s decided, may I ask about your
travel plan?”
Hearing they’d be leaving after they had a
chance to watch the performance happening the next day, Miranda declared she
had some preparations to make before their departure and so would rejoin them
at their inn later in the day.
Misha watched her go with an almost longing
gaze, prompting Geord to put a hand on her shoulder.
“You’ll see her again at dinnertime—no need to
make a face like that. Is there anywhere else you’d like to go? Once we see the
performance tomorrow, we’ll be leaving this city behind.”
Misha thought for a moment, remembering her
conversation with Iris that morning. “Apparently, the cliff where the maiden
from the story yesterday threw herself into the water is a real place. It’s
supposed to be really pretty, so I’d like to see it.”
Geord tilted his head. “It’s actually real?”
“I was told it’s up a side road past the old
temple. It’s not an officially recognized spot, but they figure that’s where it
had to have happened, based on the story.”
“Well, I guess we can take a gander.”
The old temple was an impressive stone
building standing on the outskirts of the city. Stepping inside, they were
greeted with a view of a beautiful blue stained glass window. It was hard to
decipher what the geometrical patterns in it were intended to express, but the
sunlight passing through it lent a soft blue light to everything inside.
“It’s like we’re underwater,” Misha sighed,
taken in by the beautiful sight. Lifting her hand into the light, she watched
it cast a blue glow over her skin.
“That is in fact exactly what it aims to
express,” a voice called out behind them, giving Misha a bit of a start.
Turning around, she found an old man in a priest’s robes emerging from a side
door by the altar. “My apologies for startling you. I noticed we have quite the
rare guest today, so I came out to greet you.” The deep wrinkles in his face
told of his many years.
Seeing the gentle light in the man’s eyes,
almost lost beneath all the wrinkles, Misha snapped out of her surprise and
dropped to her knees.
“I’m sorry we entered without permission!”
At that, the old priest grabbed her hand and
pulled her back to her feet.
“The doors of a god’s house are open to all
who visit. No need to apologize.” He then guided her forward to where the altar
stood. “Do you know how this city came to be? It is said that after those
events, craftsmen built this as an offering.”
Seeing it up close, she could now tell that
the altar was covered in complicated patterns and designs formed from different
shades of blue glass.
“It’s the ocean?”
“Yes. They were loath to attempt a statue of a
god, but the ocean is just as much a part of him, so they thought to make that
instead.”
Misha turned to the stained glass again. Now
that the priest had mentioned it, she could see some parts that curled and
twisted like waves in the sea.
“Is this the temple in the legend, then?”
Misha asked, but the priest shook his head.
“No. Unfortunately the original temple was
washed away in a tsunami. A great deal of valuable literature and documentation
was swallowed by the sea that day. This temple was built after the fact, so it
is not the same one as in the legend.”
“But it looks so old...” Misha murmured,
getting a small laugh from the priest.
“Indeed, it is. It will soon be three hundred
years since it was built, so you could say it’s getting on in years.”
“Three hundred years?!” Misha exclaimed. This
temple had been here watching over the city and the ocean for longer than a
person’s entire life. She could only imagine what that kind of time was like.
While Misha observed the temple in awe, Geord
asked the priest about the cliff, and he kindly guided them to the start of the
path leading up to it. The trip turned out to be quite a hike, the path steep
and only barely wide enough for a single person to walk up.
What was she thinking when
she ran up this road, hearing her lover was dead?
Misha wondered as she made her way up, imagining the maiden running past her in
her wedding dress. The view opened suddenly, the branches of the trees lining
the path opening into a wide clearing—beyond which was nothing but a blue
expanse.
“Whoa...!” Without thinking, Misha trotted up
to the side of the cliff, where Geord hurriedly grabbed a hold of her. Almost
shaking her head at Geord’s overprotective behavior, she glanced down and
immediately gulped. Far below, waves crashed onto jagged rocks before returning
as a white foam back to the sea. If someone fell here, there was no way they’d
be okay.
“Yeah, you’d definitely need a god’s help to
make it back from that...”
Feeling a chill that she couldn’t quite blame
on the ocean breeze, Misha took a step back. Misha could only save those who
were still alive. Once you were dead, medicine couldn’t do much for you.
“But the view is really
beautiful,” she said, looking over the sea while Geord thankfully kept her
anchored to safety. Checking to her left, she saw the city far below, and that
brought another thought to mind. “If a tsunami took out the temple here, does
that mean the city got damaged too? No one mentioned anything like that.”
Even though she couldn’t see the temple
anymore through the trees, it was hard to believe a tsunami could take it away
without harming the town at all. Or did the city get struck by so many tsunamis
that no one felt it was worth mentioning?
There was no one there to answer those
questions for her.
Chapter 12: Getting to Know Miranda
After enjoying the view from the cliff for a
while, they ate a slightly late lunch before heading to the stage near the port.
Unlike the day before, all sorts of decorations now adorned the stage, giving
the whole thing a majestic ambience. The area in front of the stage housed a
formal seating area, and a part of it had even been sectioned off as if a very
important guest would be in attendance. Apparently, the lord of this region
would be coming to see the performance, so Misha was starting to wonder if this
festival was a bigger deal than she had originally thought.
Maybe it’s more like a ritual than a festival, she wondered.
She recognized the temple priest among the
adults discussing things on the stage. Once they made eye contact, Misha gave
him a small bow.
“Misha!”
A sudden impact from behind sent her
staggering forward a couple steps. Catching herself, she turned around to see
the boy who had invited her to watch the performance the day before. He was
wrapped tight around her waist, face shining as he looked up at her.
“Oh. Hi, Toi.”
The boy gave a cute, happy bounce at hearing
Misha remembered his name. “You’re back!”
“Yep, I couldn’t miss it. I brought some
treats for everyone too. Do you all have a minute?” As she lifted the bag in
her hands, the group of children erupted into excited cheers.
The crowd quickly surrounded her,
energetically leading her away to the children’s waiting room, a tent set up
beside the spectators’ seats.
“Aren’t there more of you here today than
yesterday?” Misha asked, surprised at the unexpectedly dense crowd.
Toi nodded. “Yesterday was just the main cast.
Today the background dancers and choir are here too. I’ll be in the choir!”
As Misha started to worry whether she had
brought enough for everyone, Toi pulled her by the hand into the center of the
crowd.
“Oh, it’s the girl from yesterday,” one kid
said.
As he did, the more familiar faces in the
crowd started to collect around her. The way they all moved together made it
clear that their extra hours of practice had formed a strong bond between the
kids in the main cast.
“Hello, I came to watch again. And I brought
presents!” she said, lifting the bag with a smile, but then she realized
someone was missing. “Where’s Iris?”
At that, everyone’s faces clouded over. At the
same time, Toi’s grip on her hand tightened. Looking down at him in surprise,
she saw the happy smile from before had evaporated, replaced by a frustrated
scowl.
“Them again...” he muttered, before dashing
out a small exit behind the other kids, different from the one they had used to
come inside. Misha reflexively ran after him. Less an exit and more just a gap
in the wall of the tent, it was much easier for kids to slip through than
adults, so while Geord got stuck where he was, Misha kept running.
Peeking into alleys and long grasses as he
ran, it didn’t seem like Toi had a particular destination in mind. After
searching a few places, he peeked around the corner of a building to find a
group of people. It was a small dead-end road, actually more like an alleyway.
Iris was there, back against a wall, while three older girls stood in front of
her, boxing her in. The girl in the lead, wearing a rather flashy red dress,
had just shoved her backward.
“What are you guys doing?!” Toi shouted,
bursting onto the scene. He slipped in to stand in front of his sister and
spread his arms wide to stop them from reaching her.
“Oh my, the little white knight has arrived,”
the girl in the red dress snorted derisively, earning mean-spirited giggles
from her companions.
Misha took that time to make her presence
known. “Iris, we’ve been looking for you. The priest wants to talk to you.”
She’d spoken casually, hiding any tension, and
her sudden interruption made the girls turn around as one. Seeing an entirely
unfamiliar person had arrived, the girls glanced at one another. Deciding they
couldn’t handle a new arrival, they marched away.
“Got it? I’m sure you know what’ll happen this
time if you don’t!” With one last comment they left, leaving Misha dumbstruck.
The way the girl had spoken was so condescending, it reminded Misha of a mean
old woman.
“Are you okay, Iris? They didn’t hurt you, did
they?” Toi looked up at his sister.
Seeing him on the verge of tears, she managed
a weak smile in spite of the gloom she felt. “I’m fine. They just shouted at me
a bit. Thank you.”
She gave him a hug. Misha couldn’t help but
notice she was trembling slightly.
“What did they want?” Misha asked as the two
comforted each other. She was having trouble getting a grip on the situation.
Toi glared in the direction that the group of
girls had gone. “They’re awful. They’re not from here, but ever since they
turned ten, they’ve shown up in town a month before the dance and tried to
steal the role of the maiden.”
“Steal?” Misha got caught on a rather ominous
word in his explanation.
“The kids in this town really admire the roles
of the Dragon God and the maiden. All the roles are important, but those two
are special. The girl who was yelling at me—her mother was born in this city
but ended up moving away when she married a noble elsewhere. Her mother also
seems to be pretty determined to get her that role,” Iris said, shoulders
slumped.
“Normally whoever the best dancer is gets the
role, and Iris is way better than she’ll ever be...”
Toi’s face twisted into a scowl.
The siblings’ reactions were enough for Misha
to generally understand.
“But this year, that girl’s thirteen. She’s
too old to be onstage. Everyone was relieved that we’d finally be able to do it
without her butting in, but she’s still trying to make Iris give up so she can
take the lead role again.”
Misha was taken aback at the girl’s apparent
selfishness. “She can do that?”
Iris shook her head. “The dance is a ritual
for the Dragon God. Long ago, it was decided only children between the ages of
ten and twelve can participate. The adults would never let her break that
rule—not that she cares.” Iris sighed. Nonetheless, she lifted her head and
smiled a moment later. “But I have no plans on giving up my spot this year. I’m
twelve, so this is my last chance. I’ve tried so hard for this since I was
little. I don’t want it any less than she does.”
Misha was taken in by Iris’s sparkling eyes
and bright smile. She couldn’t help but find such single-minded determination
beautiful.
However, children like them didn’t understand
how cruel the world could be. They didn’t understand how much joy the cruel
drew from trampling on that innocence.
“Rehearsal’s going to start soon. Let’s go,”
Misha urged them forward.
“Okay!”
If they had noticed the hidden pair of eyes
watching them, maybe things would have turned out differently.
As promised, a brown-haired, brown-eyed
Miranda joined them at the inn just before dinner. It was incredible how much a
change in color affected her whole appearance.
Since Misha was the only one to whom she had
taught her disguise techniques, Geord and his knights refused to believe it was
the same person they had met earlier, believing it impossible to change one’s
eye color. In the end, Misha had to convince them to let her in and wash the
color from her eyes before they accepted who she was.
“Was it okay to show them you can change your
eye color, though?” Misha asked after she had shooed Geord from the room,
unwilling to let the others see how Miranda actually did it.
Miranda smirked knowingly as she got ready to
reapply the eye coloring. “It’s not like they can copy the method just by
knowing I’m capable of it. I wouldn’t tell them about the mask, though.”
“The mask, huh?” Misha winced as she peeked at
Miranda’s work. She had to admit, seeing Miranda peel off the old lady mask had
been a bit gruesome.
“If they learn we have ways to not just change
the color of our hair but also our faces, they’ll definitely put more pressure
on us to try and learn those techniques.” Using a small dropper, she carefully
applied some of the solution to her eyes, then stared hard, careful not to
blink until the color had set in. “This is the hardest part. I really need to
figure out how to make the color set faster.”
“Are you not supposed to blink?” Misha asked
as Miranda stared into her hand mirror.
“You need the solution to dry on the surface
of your eyes. Otherwise, the color will run.”
“It needs to dry...” Misha murmured to
herself, sinking into thought.
The sudden shift into silence caught Miranda’s
attention, who watched from the corner of her eye. Misha’s behavior was likely
entirely unconscious. The way she put a finger to her lips reminded Miranda so
much of Leyas, she couldn’t stop her eyes from tearing up.
Oh no, not now. If I start crying, I’ll have to
start all over.
As she desperately tried to resist for the few
moments longer it would take for the solution to dry, Misha suddenly piped up
again.
“What about mixing some spikemoss into it?”
“Hmm? Spikemoss?” Miranda repeated in
surprise.
Spikemoss was a plant that grew in abundance
nearby. Its young leaves were edible after boiling them, and the stalks could
be dried out and woven into things like baskets. It was a commonly used plant
in all sorts of disciplines, but when it came to medicine...
“The liquid you get from squeezing spikemoss
makes wounds dry out, right? I was wondering if...maybe that would help...” The
way Miranda stared so intently at her as she spoke was decidedly unpleasant,
leading to Misha’s confidence starting to wane. She had slipped right back into
her habit of discussing medicine with her mother, but maybe she had crossed the
line.
But as she was starting to get anxious,
Miranda suddenly dashed over and grabbed her.
“That’s amazing, Misha! I can’t believe no
one’s ever thought of that! I think you’re right. That’ll probably work! I need
to send a letter to the researchers right away!”
Miranda lifted her off the ground and spun her
around, which left Misha a little dizzy, but she nevertheless beamed at the
woman’s excitement.
“If you wait for it to finish growing and for
the stalks to turn brown, you won’t be able to get as much from them, but the
liquid will come out clear and smooth that way. That’s probably best if you’re
mixing it with something else,” Misha continued, surprising Miranda yet again.
“You’re quite observant, Misha. That’s
amazing,” she said, patting the girl on the head.
The young green spikemoss plant would produce
quite a bit of juice when squeezed, so normally that’s what one would have
thought to use. No one would have thought to wait for it to wither before
harvesting it, so it would normally be impossible to compare the qualities of
the liquids from a young and old plant.
Good intuition, and strong powers of observation.
Looks like she inherited both Leyas’s and Ryne’s strengths.
Miranda felt a faint throb in her chest as she
remembered her childhood friends.
“I’ll tell them that too. However, spikemoss
doesn’t grow around our village, so they’ll probably have to grow some from
scratch in the greenhouse.” She smiled faintly as she combed her fingers
through Misha’s hair.
Although they had the same natural hair color,
Misha’s was straight and smooth, while Miranda’s was naturally quite wavy and
curly. It didn’t have the same glossy beauty that Misha’s did. Whenever Miranda
had complained about it, Leyas had always replied that Miranda’s hair was much
cuter. The grass was always greener on the other side, they’d joke.
“Here, let me braid your hair for you. I’m
quite good at it, you know,” Miranda offered.
“Thank you! My hair is really smooth and
silky, so while it feels nice, I can never get it to stay! Tying it up is
impossible—it always slips out. I wish I had soft hair like yours. You look
like you could be a princess.”
Miranda’s reminiscing had started to feel a
little gloomy, but Misha’s excitement rejuvenated her. The way the young
apothecary complained about her own hair was so similar to the memory she had
just recalled, Miranda couldn’t help but burst out in laughter.
“Leyas used to say the same thing. I think you
two have way prettier hair than mine.” She chuckled happily as she got to work,
which made Misha cheery in return.
As someone who could tell her things she
didn’t know about her own mother, Miranda had quickly become an important
person to her.
“Hmm? What’s this?”
After finishing tying up Misha’s hair,
Miranda’s eyes happened across the glittering blue stone that Misha had found.
“I found it at the beach. I thought it was
pretty, so I brought it home, but...” Misha explained as Miranda picked it up.
When she’d found out the stone gave off its
own natural light, she had thought it a bit scary and so had left it behind,
but she didn’t feel like she could actually share that part out loud, so she
went quiet. Miranda didn’t seem to notice her odd expression; she was too
focused on the stone in her hands as she held it to the light.
“Maybe it’s a sea drop? But it’s a lot clearer
and harder than the ones I’ve seen before.”
“A sea drop?” It was the first Misha had ever
heard of it.
Miranda nodded. “You find them occasionally on
the beach. They’re formed from salt fusing together and crystallizing. We don’t
know what makes them crystallize in this way, though. You can taste the salt if
you scratch it a bit.”
“It’s salt?”
“That’s right. It’s a kind of rock salt. Want
to try tasting it?”
Misha was stunned. She hadn’t expected Miranda
to know what it was. That didn’t explain why the stone was glowing, but Misha
decided not to bring that up.
“Strange...” she murmured, examining the
little stone in her hand.
Chapter 13: Iris’s Disappearance
Oh, I’m back here again.
Misha once again found herself underwater, in
that world of wavering blue light. This time, however, the crying figure was
nowhere to be seen.
I thought he had called me here. Was I wrong?
Misha looked around confused, but there was
nothing around her save this empty, silent blue world stretching as far as she
could see.
Actually, if this is underwater, why are there no
fish?
Never mind the fish—there wasn’t even any
seaweed. The ground was just silky white sand. Digging her toes into the
ground, her foot easily sank in deep, but unlike during her visit to the beach,
the sensation felt quite disconnected.
“What a lonely place,” she murmured.
Much to her surprise, there was an amused
reply.
“That’s not a very nice thing to say after
barging into someone’s home.”
It was less like she heard it and more like
the voice was reverberating inside her own head. She abruptly whipped her head
around, but there was still no one in sight.
“You cannot see me. I exist within the water
itself. But more importantly, little dreaming one, why have you come here?”
Misha grimaced as the voice scratched once
again at the inside of her head.
“You were here yesterday as well, no? You were so
loud trying to talk to that illusion that you woke me up.”
“Illusion?” Though she knew it was pointless,
she couldn’t help but rub at her ears in an attempt to wipe away the unpleasant
sensation.
“Yes. An illusion born from my dreams. I suppose
you could call it a memory.”
“Are you that man, then?”
“In a way, yes. In a way, no. That man is a part
of me, something I created to break the monotony of my endless boredom. One
small part of me, washed ashore on the night of a storm to play mischief among
the humans, only to have his heart stolen by a human girl.”
It sounded exactly like the story of the
Dragon God Misha had heard from Iris.
“Then are you the Dragon God?”
Misha heard a chuckle at that.
“I suppose that would be correct. That is, once
again, only a part of me, one of the many names the children of man have given
me.”
“Then, who are you?”
“You are quite curious, little girl so loved by
the land. Well, no matter. For my friend’s sake, I will answer you. I inhabit
the vast sea, ruling over all that is within it.”
The blunt explanation just left Misha more
confused. Was that different from the Dragon God?
“Now, I have answered your question, so it is
time for you to answer mine. For what reason have you come here?”
Misha could only shake her head. “I didn’t try
to come here. I don’t really have an answer for you. I thought someone else had
brought me here.”
Misha’s answer was met with a period of
silence. Not sure where to look, she started feeling a little anxious.
He exists within the water? He rules over the
ocean? Then I guess I’m actually inside him right now?
As
Misha strained to make sense of her situation, the voice returned. “I sense something of the ocean in you, yet it is not my own blessing.
Have you perhaps found something?”
“I found a blue stone in the water,” Misha
answered honestly, earning a sigh from the voice.
“That would be enough. It must have dropped it
before returning to me. So that is what brought you here...”
Misha got a strange feeling from the
exasperation in the voice. If the “it” the voice referred to was the Dragon God
in the story, why had the stranger been crying like that? Had the maiden he
fell in love with gone away somewhere?
“Humans lie to cover their own mistakes. The
young maiden in that story returned to the cycle of reincarnation before the
two were able to be married. Though it returned to me, it never gave up,
continuing to wander endlessly in search of her. It seems after being broken
off from me, returning is not so easy for it. Its incessant mourning while
wandering within me was too much for me, so I have been asleep for these past
hundred years,” the
voice explained, trying to dispel Misha’s confusion.
“Does that mean I woke you up by coming here?
I’m sorry.”
Another
chuckle. “It is no matter. You are as much a victim
as I am. Besides, the dance offering will be held tomorrow, no? The waters
quiver with anticipation. It shall be a good opportunity for me to gaze upon
the human world once again.”
Misha was a bit relieved that this mysterious
entity seemed to be kind. Having grown up isolated in the forest, she felt a
bit closer to these kinds of strange beings than she was to most people.
Whether you called them gods or not, she knew from experience that nothing good
came from getting on their bad side. They could be quite fickle and
mischievous. A young girl running alone through the forest was apparently a
prime target for such beings, so she had often found herself falling victim to
their pranks. Though she would have had to admit she had been saved by their
help twice as often.
But wow. This is the first time I’ve been able to
have a clear conversation with one of them.
If this being ruled over the entire vastness
of the ocean, it had to be much stronger than the entities she’d encountered in
the forest. In that case, this one being able to speak made sense, she told
herself.
“I am afraid if you linger here for long, it will
have ill effects on your body. I suggest it is about time you return.”
“Okay...but how do I do that?”
As the voice brought Misha back to reality,
she found herself in a bit of a conundrum. She had appeared here suddenly and
without warning, so she had no idea how to leave.
“Oh my. You are quite the handful, aren’t you?” the voice murmured.
Misha felt the water around her start to
whirl. It was like something warm had wrapped itself around her. The sensation
was very much like being held in her mother’s arms again, which drew a deep
sigh out of her.
“This may be a bit disorienting, so you may wish
to close your eyes. Farewell, daughter of the forest. I have enjoyed your
company. Give the forest my regards.”
Misha felt her body suddenly lift into the
whirling water. She could have sworn she was spinning as if she were being
sucked away—until her consciousness snapped off.
When she opened her eyes, she was lying on her
bed in the inn. She was hit by a wave of dizziness as she tried to sit up,
prompting her to give up and lie back down.
Closing her eyes tight, she thought back over
the exchange she’d just had. The memory was too vivid for her to consider it a
dream, especially because she’d seen the same place the day before. On top of
that, she was left with a sense of exhaustion that hadn’t followed her to the
waking world the last time. It was a bit annoying that just having a
conversation had been so taxing on her.
Turning to her side table, she saw that the
small blue stone still sat there. Miranda had put a small white handkerchief
under it, giving the impression of a tiny little shrine. Just as the day
before, Misha picked up the faintly glowing stone, checking it over in the
predawn gloom.
The Dragon God from the story must have
dropped it. It looked very much like a teardrop to Misha. She thought back to
the story the voice had told her.
If she went back into the cycle of reincarnation,
that means the maiden died, right? If the Dragon God was left alone, that must
have meant he didn’t make it in time. I guess the maiden died when she jumped
into the ocean? That would explain why he was crying while holding a person in
a wedding dress. I wonder if he destroyed the city with a tsunami out of
sorrow? Especially since a tsunami washed away the temple like I was told.
Maybe the people feared the Dragon God’s wrath, so they rewrote the story when
they rebuilt the town...?
Misha quietly mulled over what she had learned
as she turned the rock over in her fingers. If that’s what had happened, all
the strange oddities in the story started to line up. It didn’t seem all that
unlikely either. Humans tended to fear things greater than themselves.
“So why do you come to me? Why did you take me
to that place?”
The stone’s only response was to continue
glowing dimly.
Misha had gone back to sleep after her
experience underwater before she went to breakfast. Once she’d finished eating
and was drinking her tea, Toi burst into the room, taking Misha by surprise.
“Has anyone seen Iris? I can’t find her
anywhere!”
Misha immediately jumped up and ran over to
his side. His shoulders were heaving from the exertion of running, and his face
was terribly pale. Putting a calming hand on his shoulder, she gave him a cup
of water and urged him to drink. She could tell he’d collapse any second now
from the chaos between his mind and body.
He must have been parched, as he gulped down
the water so fast it triggered a coughing fit. Misha gave him a forceful pat on
the back.
“It’s okay, Toi. Calm down. Can you tell me
what happened?”
His anxiety pulled down by Misha’s calm voice,
Toi took a few deep breaths before turning a pleading expression on her.
“Since the dance today is part of a ritual,
Iris and the dancer playing the Dragon God had to do a ceremony this morning.
They got up before sunrise to go to the temple where they enter a spring for
purification one at a time. Iris went in and didn’t come out for a while, so
the priest went to check on her, but no one was there. They searched the whole
temple but didn’t find her...and...”
As Toi broke down in tears, Misha wrapped him
in a hug.
“No matter where we look...we can’t find
her... That mean girl said Iris got scared and ran away, but there’s no way
that’s true. I know how hard Iris has been working for this...”
Misha nodded as Toi managed to explain between
sobs. Anyone who’d seen the light in Iris’s eyes would have felt the same way
Toi did.
“Something must have happened. There’s no way
she’d run away. Misha, please help! You have to find her!” Toi’s cry echoed
throughout the dining hall.
Misha turned to Geord before giving another
firm nod to the boy. “Of course. We’ll find her together. Don’t worry.” Misha
nodded, determination clear as day on her face. “First of all, searching at
random won’t help. Let’s start at the temple. We might find something there,
right?”
Toi nodded as Misha rubbed his back. He tried
to stand, but he’d been running nonstop since he heard the news his sister had
gone missing. His knees collapsed under him, dropping him back into his seat.
Staring at his own useless legs, before he
could even make a second attempt, he felt himself lifted into the air.
“I’ll give you a lift—so long as you don’t
wriggle around.” Geord grinned affectionately at the stiff boy.
“Thank you...” Toi replied, finally relaxing.
Although he was embarrassed to be carried around like a small child, he knew it
wasn’t worth the time arguing over it, and so he let Geord carry him.
We need to find her as soon as possible. I don’t
care if they make fun of me after! he thought.
He didn’t hesitate to throw away his pride as
a young boy. That said, a small part of him still hoped that none of his
friends saw him being carried around like a baby.
Understanding the boy’s feelings, Geord wasted
no time with chitchat, immediately setting off for the temple. The speed with
which he ran wasn’t just from the urgency of the situation.
When they arrived at the temple, they found it
in an uproar. The ritual dance was to start at precisely noon, yet the maiden
who would be at the heart of the whole thing was nowhere to be found.
“Come on! I’m telling you, I’ll do it for her!
There’s no point wasting time looking for a coward!”
Misha frowned at the girl shouting in the
midst of all the tumult. It was far too convenient for her to be here right
when Iris had disappeared.
“Shut up! You don’t belong here! You’re not
even from this city!” Toi shouted from Geord’s arms. As the one most worried
about Iris, he was the most infuriated by her attitude. “I bet you did
something to her so you could take her place! Give me back my sister!”
Fear briefly flashed over the girl’s face but
was quickly replaced by a derisive sneer. “What, you have proof I did
something? Stop with the false accusations. You sound like a fool!”
But Misha didn’t miss the wavering in her eyes
as she spoke. A stubborn, prideful girl like her shouldn’t have been so shaken
by a lie. Misha was all but sure she was involved somehow. If she hadn’t been,
that accusation should have infuriated her.
“Oh? Then why are you here?” Misha asked, her
voice calm and collected.
“Why...?” The girl hesitated.
“You’re a total outsider, right? You’re not
related to the temple, and you’re not in Iris’s family. So why are you here?
Who told you that Iris was missing?” Misha’s voice and gaze grew steadily
colder, and as it did, the chaos around them started to quiet.
“B-Because...I noticed the temple was really
noisy, so...”
As the girl tried to come up with an excuse,
Misha stepped up to her. “I heard there was a purification ceremony held early
in the morning. Outsiders wouldn’t be allowed in at that time, right? Even
Iris’s own little brother had to wait at home. And this temple is outside the
city. How would you have ever noticed the temple was noisy?” Stopping a single
pace away, Misha stared hard into the girl’s eyes. “It’s almost like you knew
Iris was going to disappear.”
The girl gulped, tensing up under Misha’s
glare to the point that she couldn’t move. She was terrified. She didn’t know
why, but something about those jade-green eyes felt like they were seeing right
through her.
“I... I don’t know anything! All I told them
was that she’d be alone in the morning...!” The girl’s hands immediately
clapped over her mouth as she realized what she’d said, but it was too late.
Misha’s eyes turned distant. “Meaning someone
else was after her too.”
The moment Misha looked away, the girl dropped
to the floor like a marionette whose strings had been cut.
“Just to be sure, is your family really rich,
Toi? Enough that someone could expect to get a ransom?”
Toi shook his head vigorously. “No, we’re just
fishermen. We don’t have that kind of money!”
Misha nodded once. “That’s what I thought. The
timing would be too strange anyway. Why would they kidnap someone when it would
be so obvious?” Misha closed her eyes, murmuring to herself. “In that case,
this must be specifically to disrupt the ritual. But why?”
Everyone standing around watched silently as
the young apothecary sank into thought. Somehow everyone in the temple had been
caught up in her rhythm, but lost in her head as she was, Misha didn’t even
notice.
Dancers were selected for their skill. Iris
was the best in years. It was the morning of the ritual. The priest had said it
had been almost three hundred years since the construction of the new
temple...if the myth was true. But Misha had learned from the ruler of the
ocean that the story had been distorted.
Misha turned to the priest. “Why was the
temple rebuilt?”
The old priest blinked in surprise, hesitating
a moment before replying, “We were told a tsunami struck the city, destroying
it. Is that detail important?”
“Is there a record of when that tsunami
happened?”
The priest shook his head. “I am sorry, I am
not a local. I was assigned here from the main temple, so I do not know the
details. I heard that half of the city was destroyed by the tsunami, though. It
was a chaotic time, so the records of it are quite vague.”
Misha shifted her gaze away from the priest to
another elderly man nearby.
“Do you know?”
The man was clearly uncomfortable with her
staring at him. “It was so long ago that I can’t say for sure, but I believe I
heard it was the year Dawn Moon 956. What does that mean?”
“That’s what I thought—it’s been exactly three
hundred years. This year is the turning point.” Misha’s gaze turned sharp. Then
she said to Geord, “I think Iris is in real danger.”
Her declaration sent a ripple through the
crowd once again.
Chapter 14: Searching for a Clue
Seeing Toi freeze out of the corner of his
eye, Geord turned to Misha. “Can I ask why you think she’s in danger?”
“I don’t have any proof, but this timing is
too suspicious. This was supposed to be a ritual offered to the Dragon God.
It’s a story about overcoming hardship and finding happiness. That’s what the
dance is trying to express—that, prayers, and thankfulness. But is that story true?”
Darkness passed over the faces of the locals
as Misha cast doubt on the legend that underlaid their prosperity as a city,
but she continued, heedless of them.
“Don’t you think it’s strange? There was a
tsunami big enough to wash away half of the city, which also washed away
records. But if this city was under the Dragon God’s protection, why was it hit
by a tsunami in the first place? And you can’t say that the tsunami happened
before the legend, because the priest already told us that wasn’t the case.”
That was what had sounded so off about the
story. The wedding ceremony had happened here, but the original building had
been destroyed by a tsunami. This temple was built after the fact. It made no
sense that a tsunami would strike a city that the Dragon God was protecting.
“Someone told me that the legend was made up.
That the maiden was ‘returned to the cycle of reincarnation.’ If that’s true,
then everything would line up. The Dragon God sent the tsunami because he was
devastated by the loss of his loved one. Afraid of his wrath, the people began
holding rituals to appease him. They created a happier version of the story,
hoping that would be some consolation to him...”
Silence settled over the temple. With the
records of that time lost, there was no way to prove or disprove her argument.
Three hundred years was just too long a time frame. Even so, Misha’s words
resounded with the listeners, echoing with every semblance of truth.
“Okay, so what? What does that have to do with
my sister?!” Toi shouted, breaking the silence. Squirming out of Geord’s grip,
he stomped up to Misha.
“Any religion has its fanatics. This year you
had a dancer so skilled that she could have been the reincarnation of the
maiden, and it’s been exactly three hundred years since the events in the
story. I think that’s more than enough reason to spur them on to action.”
“But Iris is...” Toi was at a loss.
Ignoring him, Misha continued her explanation
as she vacantly stared into the distance. Her usual bright, cheerful nature was
nowhere to be seen, replaced by a steely mask.
“None of it makes sense. If it’s a love story,
why do they only let children do it? I wonder if long ago, the dancers were
actually sacrifices to the Dragon God, replacements for his lost wife. That’s
why they only allow girls who are too young to be married to participate. They
wanted to stop replacing his wife.”
Misha’s monologue was cut off by the sound of
a loud clap, drawing her back into the real world. After a few confused blinks,
she returned to her usual self, whatever was possessing her seeming to have
lifted.
“So, you’re saying she was kidnapped by
fanatics, then?” Geord asked as he yet again lifted Toi, who was on the verge
of tears.
Misha stared back at him stunned for a moment
before giving a small nod. “Back when we were watching the rehearsals, there
were some others in the audience who looked kind of suspicious. They seemed
like ordinary people, but there was something in their eyes that felt wrong.
They weren’t paying any attention to me, though, so I didn’t think much of
them.”
Though relieved to see Misha was back to her
usual self, Geord nevertheless frowned. “Why didn’t you say anything?”
“I only saw them for a moment. Besides, they
weren’t there the next day, but maybe I didn’t notice them again in the
crowd...” Misha shrank back at Geord’s scolding tone.
Sighing, suppressing the whirlwind of emotion
that engendered, Geord turned to the priest. “Any idea who she could be talking
about?”
“Well...I suppose I cannot say for sure they
don’t exist...”
Conflicted, the priest glanced at the other
adults around, the ensuing silence broken only by Toi as he started to sob.
This was probably too much for the boy. Geord handed him off to one of the nuns
and turned back to look over the adults.
“Either way, whether they’re fanatics or not,
the little lady harassing Iris admitted to having talked to a stranger, so we
know someone was targeting Iris. Please ask around to see if there were any
reports of suspicious people. Also, could I take a look at the spring they used
for the purification ceremony? I want to see how they got her out of there. We
are quite accustomed to investigations like this, so if you want Iris back safe
and sound, it would behoove you all to cooperate with us.”
The confidence in Geord’s tone finally pushed
the crowd of hesitating adults into motion. No one complained about an outsider
taking charge. The city was a peaceful place; the largest incidents they dealt
with were drunken fights and squabbles over lending. All this talk of fanatics
and human sacrifices terrified them. If someone was willing to take charge with
such confidence, they were more than happy to cling to them.
“This way.”
Feeling the same way as all those present, the
priest in charge did as Geord instructed, leading him to the spring. After
sending one of his knights off to gather information, Geord quickly followed
after the priest. Leaving the main hall of the temple, they took a number of
turns through the corridors before descending a staircase leading underground.
They ended up in a room, bare of any
decoration, save some windows near the ceiling to allow light in. The floor was
made from the same stone as the walls and ceiling, and it dropped in the middle
into a large square that was filled to the brim with water. Though the water
was perfectly clear, it had the same distinctive briny smell of the rest of the
city.
“This is seawater?” Misha asked, dipping a
finger into the water and popping it into her mouth, to find it was indeed as
salty as she expected. Looking into the water, she could see holes at each of
the corners of the square, each about the size of her hand.
“That’s right. The water flows in here from
the ocean. I do not know exactly how it works, so I can’t explain it any
further than that, but every day fresh water flows, so it is used for
ceremonial purification before various rites,” the priest explained.
Meanwhile, Geord and the knights inspected the
walls, finding a small door in the corner that led into a bit of a waiting
room, filled with towels and clothes.
“This is where she got ready?” Geord asked.
“Yes. The girl taking the role of the maiden
is led here, then performs the purification rite by herself. Once finished, she
is to return to the main hall on her own, but when she didn’t arrive at the
expected time, we thought something might have gone wrong...”
“And she was gone,” Misha murmured, staring
intently into the water. “Does the dancer playing the Dragon God use this place
too?”
“No, he does his purification outside.”
“So, Iris was actually entirely alone. Is
there any way to get outside from this room?”
“Not that I am aware of. The staircase we took
to get down here is the only way in and out. The nun in charge of her was
waiting at the top of the stairs, so there shouldn’t have been any way for an
intruder to get in,” the priest said, growing steadily more bewildered.
Satisfied the priest was telling the truth,
Misha began a slow walk around the water. She then found something of interest,
kneeling down to get a closer look. There was a small depression in the stone
floor of the basin. It was hard to tell through the water, but it seemed like
there was some kind of design etched into it.
“Do you ever drain the water?”
“No. Even when cleaning the room, the water is
left in the basin. It is said if the basin is ever empty, something terrible
will happen, so we never drain it.”
“I see.” Misha nodded to the priest’s
words...and then jumped into the water. The basin was unexpectedly deep, so she
ended up sinking past the top of her head at first, but when she struggled back
to her feet in a panic, she found it came up to only her shoulders.
“Misha?!” Geord and the knights rushed over at
the sound of her hitting the water, while Misha felt around the bottom of the
basin with her feet. Then, after hesitating for only a moment, she took a deep
breath and dove in.
The water was clear, so she could see quite
well. Reaching the bottom right away, she inspected a small section of the
floor of the basin. Although it was quite faded, there was definitely something
drawn there.
But something wasn’t quite right. It looked
like little more than a child’s doodle, but it probably depicted the Dragon
God. But strangely, the head and the tail weren’t lined up with the rest of it.
Finally reaching her limit, Misha popped back
up to the surface, gasping for air after holding her breath for so long.
“What do you think you’re doing?!”
“Wait... Wait...”
Geord hurriedly tried to pull her from the
water, but Misha slipped away from him, trying to get her breathing back under
control. Geord froze where he was, kneeling at the edge of the basin.
“There’s something drawn on the bottom. I’m
going to take another look, one second.”
“Okay, I’ll go with you.”
Misha shook her head as Geord moved to jump in
alongside her. “You don’t have to get wet. I’ll just be one second!”
Before waiting for his reply, Misha dove back
in, looking at the picture once more. This time she noticed one of the corners
was a bit higher than the others. With a soft touch, a section about two
centimeters across came off.
Wait...
Pushing the pieces of the picture again, she
saw them start to shift around.
It is! It’s like a puzzle!
Once again out of breath, she stood up, barely
waiting to catch it again before dunking herself back in. After shifting the
blocks around for a bit, she managed to get the dragon’s head and tail back in
their proper places. Finally, she returned the small stone block she had
removed at the start to its place.
The picture now showed a dragon holding
something small and round. When Misha pushed on the small object it was
holding, something changed. The whole wall beside the picture slid to the side,
and the water in the basin immediately began to rush out.
Uh-oh!
Feeling herself being pulled in, she kicked
hard off the bottom of the basin. Just as she was worried that she wouldn’t
have the strength to keep herself from being sucked under, someone grabbed one
of her flailing arms and pulled her to safety, where she began coughing up the
seawater she had swallowed in her panic.
“What did you do?!” Angry scolding quickly
descended on her.
Unable to lift her head in her coughing fit,
she did what she could to lift her hands in an apologetic gesture.
“Give me a break...” Geord sighed.
While watching her fiddle around underwater,
he had begun to panic when a section of the wall shifted with a strange sound.
He felt that his instant reflex to reach out and grab her arm before she was
sucked away was deserving of at least a little praise.
By the time Misha’s coughing had subsided, the
basin had entirely drained, revealing a small passageway just large enough for
a person to crawl down.
“I never knew there was something like
this...” The priest stared in wonder down the newly revealed corridor,
evidently as surprised by the discovery as the rest of them.
“If she was taken out through here, the nuns
wouldn’t have known anything,” Geord noted. “The sound of the stone moving and
the water rushing out weren’t all that loud.”
Jumping into the now empty basin, Geord peered
down the small shaft with a scowl. “I don’t know why this was built, but if
even the temple doesn’t know about it...I can’t imagine it’s for anything
good.” Geord stood up again with a sigh, looking over to the priest. “Do you
have anything I could use as a light? It looks like it opens up farther in, so
I’d like to see how long this stretches on.”
“Me too!” Misha immediately volunteered,
earning a hard glare from her bodyguard.
“Absolutely not. There’s no telling what could
happen in there. Go get changed and wait for me. You’ll get sick otherwise.”
Misha’s shoulders slumped. Unfortunately, he
was right. Her clothes were thoroughly soaked, and as clean as the water was,
it was still seawater. As it began to evaporate, she’d feel sticky in no time.
“Besides that, I think it’s best if you delay
the ritual for now. After finding something this significant, I doubt we’ll
have Iris back very soon,” Geord warned the priest as he took the lamp offered
to him.
The priest nodded gravely. “The Dragon God is
quite magnanimous. I am sure he would prioritize the life of this young girl
well above the timing of the ritual. Please, be careful.”
Leaving one of his knights behind to guard
Misha, Geord took his remaining two men into the shaft.
After seeing him off with an unsatisfied look
of her own, Misha was led to a bath by one of the nuns. After scrubbing the
salt off with some hot water, she changed into a simple white dress they gave
her. It was the same as the outfit Iris and the others wore during their
rehearsals. The silky fabric was surprisingly comfortable.
Led on again to another room, she found Toi
lying on a bed, tended to by none other than Miranda. The herbal aroma in the
room was likely something Miranda had cooked up to help Toi relax.
“Is everything okay?” Misha asked, looking at
Toi’s pale face while he slept. Miranda nodded, leading Misha to a table a
small distance away from the bed.
“When I first arrived, he was in a terrible
state of confusion, so I gave him something to put him to sleep. His family has
apparently joined the search for the girl,” she whispered as she poured a cup
of tea for Misha. “Drink. There’s nothing we can do until Geord gets back.”
Misha nodded, taking the cup of tea. Its
gentle aroma helped soothe her fraying nerves.
“Geord’s team is made up of skilled knights,
famous even in this foreign country. Everything will be fine,” Miranda spoke
softly, gently drying Misha’s long, golden hair.
Relaxing into the sensation of Miranda combing
through her hair, Misha suddenly spoke up again.
“Orchid, redna, isu...and then something I
didn’t recognize, but it smelled a bit like mint. It’s a strange, exotic kind
of smell. Do you know what I’m talking about?”
“Was this in some kind of perfume? What about
it?” Miranda tilted her head at the odd change in topic.
“Something I smelled while we were at the
spring. The salty smell covered most of it, but it was still faintly there. I’d
smelled it somewhere before too. Probably at the rehearsal...”
“Maybe it was something the culprit was
wearing? But if it was a mixture of those three with mint...” Miranda’s face
darkened.
“Do you know it?” Misha asked nervously, to
which Miranda nodded.
“If my intuition is right, it’s a kind of drug
talked about in the old literature. Those who smell it feel intoxicated, and
they lose the ability to think clearly. If one is exposed to it for long
enough, it can even be used for hypnosis.”
“Hypnosis?”
“Yes. It can be used to make people believe
anything they are told, and also make them follow simple instructions.”
Misha sank into thought for a while before
turning to look at Miranda. “Could you check if you can smell that on any of
the people in the temple? The mechanism in the spring had to be opened from
inside. If no one went in after Iris, that must have meant someone was hiding
in there long before. There has to be someone who’s guiding people.”
Miranda thought for a moment before nodding.
“I can’t make the exact same thing, but I can make something close enough.
Let’s use that to see if anyone recognizes the smell.”
Idly watching Miranda pull out some
ingredients from her bag and get to work, Misha finished her tea. As she
swallowed the now lukewarm liquid, she looked out the window. The sky was a
brilliant blue, as if the weather were entirely unaware of the chaos unfolding
within the temple.
“Please be okay, Iris...”
Chapter 15: A Blue World
The sound of the sea.
Ever since I was born...no, even before then,
I could hear someone’s voice interspersed among the waves. Not always, but just
often enough to make me doubt my ears.
Sometimes it sounded like someone crying,
sometimes like it was calling for someone. But every
time, it was sad and lonely.
If only it had called my
name. Then I would have thrown everything away so I could go comfort that
voice.
Please don’t cry. Just call my name...
Geord and his men returned an hour after
entering the shaft in the basin. As they made their way deeper in, after about
five meters the shaft quickly widened, allowing them to walk properly, albeit a
little hunched over. The corridor was initially made of stone walls, and though
reinforced from time to time, it eventually transitioned into a natural cave.
The path branched in a number of places, but
by following the path carved in the stone by the water, they were able to find
their way out to the ocean.
“To be precise, the cave opened up at the
bottom of the cliff. The tide was out, allowing for some space between the cave
opening and the water, but I could imagine it would be underwater at other
times of the day. And there were a number of branches along the path, so there
could be more exits as well.”
Geord’s explanation brought sighs from around
the room.
“Meaning it’s going to be pretty hard to find
out where they took Iris,” Misha murmured, prompting a middle-aged woman to
begin crying. The people around her immediately started trying to console the
woman, who was apparently Iris’s mother.
“Misha.” Geord shot a disapproving glance her
way, but Misha could only shrug in reply.
“While you were gone, I thought of something
else.” Struggling against the oppressive atmosphere of the room, Misha pulled
out a small ceramic bowl. “Does anyone remember someone having this scent on
them? It doesn’t have to be exactly this, just something close.”
The bowl contained a small amount of green
paste, which had a sickly sweet and yet somehow sharp aroma.
“What’s this?” Geord asked, taking the bowl
and sniffing its contents before passing it on to the next person.
“I think it’s something the culprit used to
kidnap Iris. Miranda tried making a copy of it for me,” Misha mumbled as she
watched the bowl being passed around.
“Huh? Isn’t this...?” After the bowl was
passed around to a few people, one person seemed to recognize the scent—Iris’s
mother. Still tear-stricken, she blew her nose and then sniffed at the bowl
again. Closing her eyes for a moment, her head suddenly snapped up. “The young
nun that came to get Iris this morning smelled like this. I thought it was a
pretty strong perfume for a nun, so it left quite an impression. You were
there, weren’t you? Do you remember?”
Iris’s mother turned to one of the women at
her side who was trying to console her. After smelling it for herself, the
other woman nodded as well. “You’re right, but I don’t think it was something
the nun was wearing. The whole carriage smelled like this. I thought it was for
keeping bugs away, or maybe covering the smell of the horses. I remember
thinking, ‘City people are so stylish.’”
“Carriage...?” The priest frowned at the
woman’s words.
“That’s right. I was at their house early to
see Iris off. On my way there I saw a carriage just outside. A nun came out of
it and was talking to the driver about something. I was wondering if they were
going to take Iris by carriage this year, but when the girl left, they just
walked. I thought it was kind of strange.” As the woman spoke, the priest’s
face grew darker and darker. “Wh-What’s wrong?”
“I made no arrangements for any carriage. The
nun that went to get Iris left on foot.”
“Where is that nun right now?!” Misha all but
shouted, causing an elderly nun to inch forward.
“Sister Rosetta was in charge of taking care
of Iris. I believe she retired to her room to pray for the girl’s safety after
all that happened...”
“I want to see her. Can you show us to her
room?” Geord asked.
One of his knights followed the old nun as she
hurried out into the corridor. They returned a few minutes later with the
knight’s report.
“The room was empty, but the smell was still
quite strong inside. I don’t think there can be any doubt.”
“Wait—you can’t possibly mean Sister Rosetta
is responsible!” the priest exclaimed. “True, she is new to this city and still
quite young, but she is very serious about her duties and exceedingly kind. She
is not the kind of person who could participate in a scheme like this.”
Misha gave a disquieted nod at the priest’s
vehement defense. “I don’t have solid proof, but apparently the actual form of
the thing you smelled can be used to hypnotize people and control them to some
degree. It is quite possible Sister Rosetta was just being used.”
“In that case...” A hopeful light filled the
priest’s eyes at Misha’s explanation, but the man quickly paled once Geord
finished his sentence for him.
“In that case, if they’re done with her, she’s
in just as much danger as Iris is.”
“And you were mad at me for being too blunt
earlier...” Misha glared at Geord, who could only reply with a silent shrug.
“We have a clue as to where that nun went,”
Miranda said, dashing into the room. “Some kids playing outside saw her leave
from the back of the temple. They say she went up the mountain.”
Misha and Geord shared a glance. “The place
where the maiden threw herself into the ocean?”
“We already checked. Regrettably, there was no
one there.” As Geord shook his head, the priest stepped over to him, still
pale.
“You checked the place I informed you of the
other day, yes?”
“Yes?”
“Then that is not the right place!” The
priest’s sudden shout made Misha gulp. “That place is merely a place we send
tourists. The real location is considered sacred ground, so it is kept a
secret...”
“You have to take us there!”
Everyone ran, following the lead of a young
novitiate up the treacherous mountain trail, but the group rapidly began
shedding members. Those still gathered at the temple were mostly higher ranked
people associated with the temple itself. Most of the young, more able-bodied
people were out searching for Iris. The steep slopes and hard running were too
harsh for most of the elderly and the women.
But at this stage, every second counted. They
had no time to wait for those who couldn’t keep up. Ultimately, the young
priest found himself surrounded only by Geord’s knights, well trained and
accustomed to this level of physical exertion, followed not far behind by
Misha, used to traveling such difficult terrain in the forest.
They passed by the spot where they had looked
out over the sea the day before and kept heading higher up. They continued on
past rugged rock faces up to the summit of the mountain, jutting out over the
water thanks to the way the sea had eroded the mountain.
And on the edge of that cliff...
“Iris!”
There stood a young girl wearing a white
wedding dress. In front of her was an altar covered in numerous offerings.
Aside from her, there were around twenty people wearing deep blue robes,
chanting a song ominously in unison. Over it all roared the sea itself. The
wind howling in from the ocean brought a sharp scent of salt, twisting Misha’s
face into a scowl.
As Geord led his knights in rushing forward, a
man who appeared to be the leader of those gathered and two of his guards
stepped in front to block the way, swords in hand.
“We will not allow you to interfere with the
divine wedding. You stand before the Dragon God himself!”
Geord snorted but remained calm as he came to
a stop. “Some wedding. I don’t see any Dragon God. This is no more than
kidnapping and attempted murder. That’s a crime in my books.”
“We will destroy all those who attempt to
interfere!” the leader bellowed, glaring.
As the blue-robed men charged, Geord clicked
his tongue. “Try not to kill them. It’ll cause trouble for us later,” he
instructed as he drew his sword.
Including Geord, there were three armed
knights ready to fight. The young priest who’d guided them there shrieked as he
scurried away to safety. Terrified as he was, he still moved to guard the even
more defenseless Misha, behavior worthy of praise even if he was trembling too
much to protect her.
Sticking her head out around the priest, Misha
surveyed their surroundings. Though greatly outnumbered, Geord’s group showed
no sign of distress as they crossed swords with the blue-robed men. Even
someone with zero experience in combat could tell the knights would likely have
the fanatics suppressed in no time.
But while they fought, the “wedding” was still
happening. The sinister chanting was continuing to crescendo. Meanwhile, Iris
began to spin, dancing to their song. As elegant as the dance was, her
movements seemed shaky and unstable. Misha worried that she might stumble off
the side of the cliff at any moment.
How can I get over there...?
Misha looked around, trying to find a path
around the fighting. Thankfully, Geord and his men were a big enough problem
that none of the others had attention to spare for her.
She snuck out from behind the frozen priest.
This was nothing new to her; she had practiced moving quickly and quietly while
hunting in the forest at home. After jumping into the thicket behind her, Misha
ran a wide circle around the fighting. She managed to make it around to the
altar, but just as she jumped out of the tall grass, the singing came to a
halt.
For a brief moment, everything was silent. And
then Iris, dress fluttering in the wind, stepped toward the edge of the cliff.
“Iris!”
Misha ran forward, but her fingertips were
only able to brush the girl’s sleeve, trailing behind her as she fell. With her
eyes closed, almost in a smile, Iris tumbled off the side.
The rest happened in the blink of an eye.
Misha had no idea why she did what she did. Pulling the blue stone from her
pocket, she hurled it after Iris.
“You’ve got to save her this time!” Misha
screamed.
Iris’s eyes flittered open, her gaze still
sleepy and disoriented. She found the glimmering blue stone falling toward her
and reached for it.
The moment it touched her hand, it began to
shine. At least, Misha swore it did just as Iris vanished beneath the waves.
The roar of the sea drowned out the sharp splash of her hitting the water. For
a moment, it even looked like the waves had risen up to take hold of her.
“It’s a miracle! The Dragon God has received
his bride!”
Misha jumped at the hoarse voice from suddenly
beside her. At some point an elderly man in a blue robe had fallen to his knees
at her side and begun praying. The way he stared at the ocean was vile, and
Misha flinched backward.
“Misha! Where’s Iris?!” Geord ran up to her
side.
Looking back, Misha saw they had successfully
dispatched the blue-robed fanatics, who were now bound, with the ivy growing
nearby functioning as makeshift rope.
“I don’t know, but I saw her hit the water! We
have to go help!”
The others following them up the mountain
arrived just in time to hear Misha, and they immediately turned around, running
back to arrange for a boat. Each one of them held despair in their eyes. The
cliff from which Iris had fallen was thirty meters high. It would take a
miracle for her to have survived.
Iris’s mother staggered up to Misha’s side at
the edge of the cliff, dropped to her knees, and began shouting her daughter’s
name. Over, and over, and over...
Geord reached out and grabbed the woman as she
leaned forward, at risk of falling in herself.
Not even the sound of the waves could drown
out her wails.
Iris opened her eyes in a dream, gently
floating through the water. She figured she must be underwater, but she didn’t
have any trouble breathing.
Is this heaven? It’s so nice here...
Wrapped up in the ocean’s waters, she felt
like she was being held in someone’s arms. She breathed a sigh at the bizarre
sensation.
The morning of the ritual, she’d followed the
nun to the temple and had begun the purification rite as instructed. Stripping
off her clothes, she changed into the simple white dress they had given her and
stepped into the cold seawater. She then began to recite the prayer, slightly
trembling, nervous about making any mistakes, but doing so earnestly and
intently. The prayer had a peculiar rhythm to it, giving her young voice an odd
sense of beauty as it echoed in the otherwise silent room.
Focused so intently on what she was doing, she
didn’t notice the oddly sweet smell that started to fill the room. Little by
little, her nerves started to relax, then a pleasant sensation overwhelmed
her...and she lost all sense of where she was.
Everything after that felt like a dream. The
next thing she knew, she was surrounded by unfamiliar men, standing where the
maiden in the legend had thrown herself into the sea.
“You are going to be the Dragon God’s new
bride,” she was told as she was given a beautiful white dress, making her feel
happy in a way she couldn’t explain. She was instructed to jump into the water
once the prayer was complete; it felt like the natural thing to do.
Yes. I am going to be his bride. There’s nothing
to be afraid of...
And when she jumped, she heard someone
shouting after her. Instinctively, she opened her eyes to see a shining blue
stone falling toward her. It was something extremely important, extremely
precious. She didn’t know why, but the moment it touched her hand, she was
overwhelmed by a sense of relief.
My precious, lonely Dragon God. We’re finally
together.
“This time I made it...” A gentle voice echoed inside her head.
The words came from her lips without her
thinking. “We finally meet again. Sorry for leaving you alone.”
And the moment she felt that presence at her
side, the fog in her head cleared and everything snapped into focus.
Iris blinked.
“I’m...underwater?”
She found herself lying in the sand, her veil
still on her face, and pushed herself up to a seated position. She could feel
the water moving and see the light dancing in it all around her. As a girl who
had grown up by the sea, she had seen the sky from underwater plenty of times,
but for some reason, she could actually breathe this time.
Beyond that, all around her was nothing but
water and white sand. There were no signs of any fish or plants, something very
strange when she thought of the ocean she knew.
“It’s beautiful...but also kind of lonely.”
As her voice shook the water, she felt like
she heard a quiet chuckle in reply before she then heard, “Because there’s
nothing here.”
The deep whisper had a gentle softness to it.
She felt her heart skip a beat. Something told her she recognized this voice.
This was the voice of someone very precious, someone she had been searching for
all along.
As her heart began to race, she turned slowly
to look. There was a person standing behind her. His long hair floating around
him was the same deep blue as the water that carried it. But most beautiful
were his equally blue eyes, lit both by concern and a joy that threatened to
spill over into laughter.
How had she forgotten? How could she ever have
forgotten the person she loved more than anything?
Iris leaped into the man’s arms.
Chapter 16: Goodbye, and to the Future
“Bye, Misha!”
“Come visit again some time!”
“Bye-bye!”
Misha waved back at the crowd of children
waving at her from the wharf.
As if those voices were pushing them out, the
ship slowly made its way out of the harbor. Their departure delayed by two
days, they ended up having a remarkably large crowd to see them off.
Just as she was about to board, Misha suddenly
found herself showered in gifts, being told “Here, eat this on your trip!” or
“Play this to kill time!” as people handed her all kinds of food, board games,
and card games. They then gave her a big hug and demanded she promise to visit
sometime.
Misha nodded, deciding she could just come
back this way when she decided to head home. Unbeknownst to her, it would be
quite a while before she could make good on that promise.
The faces on the wharf grew smaller and
smaller, becoming indistinguishable from one another. Misha didn’t stop waving
until she couldn’t see them at all. As they finally disappeared from view, she
sighed, dejected, using her arms to prop up her head on the ship’s handrail.
But as sad as she was to say goodbye, that melancholy couldn’t compare to the
warm, fuzzy feeling in her chest.
I’m so glad Iris was okay, she thought, her hand reaching unconsciously for the necklace she was
wearing.
It was handmade—crafted by Iris—with a bright
blue stone set in it. Just before Misha had boarded the ship, Iris had placed
it around her neck with a shy laugh.
“That’s half of the stone that kept me safe.
It belongs to the Dragon God, so I’m sure it’ll keep you safe on your voyage
too,” Iris whispered in her ear, showing her the other half set into her own
necklace.
Misha could only offer a thank-you, wrapping
her arms around the smaller girl in a big hug.
After all of the chaos from before, the men of
the city put out a boat to look for Iris’s body at the bottom of the cliff.
However, the rough waves made it impossible to tell where she might have washed
up, so they spent a good two hours searching in vain. Not being allowed to aid
in the search, Misha was forced to wait at the temple. Geord wasn’t with her,
running here and there in the aftermath of the fight with the fanatics. That
being the case, Misha was strictly forbidden from going anywhere.
With nothing else to do, she sat in Toi’s room
and watched over him as he slept. Apparently, whatever Miranda had given him
was pretty strong, as there was no sign of him waking yet. Then again, maybe
that was from the stress of losing his sister more than the medicine.
In the back of her mind, Misha kept replaying
that last scene of Iris falling into the water. She definitely remembered the
stone starting to shine and the water moving strangely, but she had no idea
what that meant. All she could do was pray that Iris was safe. She didn’t want
Toi to have to suffer the same pain she had in losing her mother.
As she thought that, Toi suddenly shot up in
bed.
“What’s wrong, Toi? Do you feel okay?”
Without giving Misha so much as a glance, he
slipped out of bed and walked off.
“Toi?”
“Iris is coming back,” he murmured as Misha
hurried to follow him. His voice was quiet, his eyes still unfocused as if he
were still asleep. His behavior led Misha to believe he might be sleepwalking,
but she hesitated to stop him, instead choosing to see where he was going.
The temple was strangely empty as the two
walked through the chilly corridors to reach outside, where a sweeping view of
the ocean greeted them. Because the temple had been built on the edge of the
sea, there was a stone road leading from the temple down to the waterfront.
Slowly and purposefully, Toi made his way down to the beach, continuing until
he was ankle-deep in water. Then he pointed ahead.
At that moment, someone floated up from
between the waves. It was strange—as if something were guiding the body ashore.
Dashing past Toi, Misha leaped into the water.
“Iris!”
As Misha pushed her way through the waves,
Iris was slowly approaching. She was lying face-up, her face above the water,
unconscious. Despite that, it really did seem like some kind of force was
pushing her closer and closer to shore, so Misha stopped where she was and held
her arms out to catch her.
The moment Misha touched Iris, whatever that
strange force was disappeared, and Iris immediately started to sink. Misha
panicked, grabbing the girl. With the water supporting most of Iris’s weight,
it wasn’t so difficult to get the girl onto the beach, but once they were out
of the water, carrying a girl so close to her own size became an impossible
task. On top of all that, for some reason while she’d been retrieving Iris, Toi
had also passed out on the sand.
Once she had dragged the two of them safely
out of reach of the waves, she quickly examined both of them. Confirming they
were both breathing and had a strong pulse, she then ran back to the temple to
call for help.
Iris and Toi woke up soon after. Iris’s
memories after the kidnapping were quite blurry, but she was entirely uninjured
and was thinking clearly now. The people who had all but accepted Iris’s fate
cried for joy at the miracle of seeing her unharmed. Relief flooded Misha’s
heart as she watched Iris’s mother tearfully reunite with her daughter. And as
Iris returned their hugs with a bit of a confused smile, Misha couldn’t help
but feel a little jealous at how happy they all seemed.
Afterward, at Iris’s strong insistence, the
previously canceled ceremony was held a few hours later than its original
scheduled time. The ceremony was supposed to have started at noon, but because
it didn’t begin until almost sunset, the actual dance happened in the dark,
illuminated by firelight.
Just as the ritual began, the full moon rose
over the sea, casting its silver light across the water, granting a mystical
quality to the maiden’s beautiful dance. The audience watched in rapt silence
as the performance concluded with Iris sending out to sea a wreath of blue
flowers she had made.
The moment the wreath touched the water, it
vanished beneath the waves as if anchored by a huge weight—or so they thought,
only to see the wreath pop up to the surface far out in the water...and then
for a brief moment, a massive sea creature rose from the depths, took the
wreath in its mouth, and sank back beneath the waves.
No one in the audience could so much as move a
muscle until the creature’s long shadow faded from view.
Wait... Was that...?
Just before someone could raise the question,
Iris’s voice broke the silence.
“The Dragon God has received our dance
offering with pleasure. No doubt, the fishing this year will be bountiful, and
our ships will find safety at sea.”
It was the expected declaration to be made at
the closing of the ritual, but this year it seemed to hit everyone especially
hard.
It was an auspicious omen. The town had
managed to offer its thanks to the Dragon God again this year. Things would be
good. The children quickly made their way offstage, replaced by the priests for
the ritual prayers. The ceremony continued as if nothing extraordinary had
happened, and the people lost the chance to bring up the incredible thing they
had just witnessed.
And so, one more legend was born in the city.
In the morning’s darkness, before the sun had
risen, Misha felt the urge to once again take a walk by the seaside. Of course
this time, in deference to her previous scolding, she had a bodyguard with her.
“Good morning.” Just as she expected, she
found Iris standing by the beach, looking out over the water.
“Good morning.” Iris smiled, glancing at Misha
as she stepped up alongside her.
The two of them looked out over the water in
silence. Little by little, the horizon was starting to brighten.
“When I was in the water, I met the Dragon
God. He was crying, like he was really happy that he was able to save me,” Iris
murmured without turning. Her smile was so gentle, and she looked beautiful,
even mature beyond her years. “He said that my soul was the same shape as the
maiden’s from the fairy tale, that I was her reincarnation. Of course, I had no
idea what to think about that. I find the story quite sad, and it’s even
angered me sometimes, but I’m just me. Still, he
seemed so familiar.”
The soft expression on Iris’s face belied her
troubled words. Nonetheless, Misha was enchanted.
“Having a grown man crying in front of you is
kind of strange, isn’t it? I had no idea what to do! So, I just patted him on
the head like I do for Toi until he stopped crying.” Iris giggled.
Now that Misha thought about it, the Dragon
God had been crying when she first saw him too.
Iris continued, “He wanted me to stay with
him, but I couldn’t. I have my own dreams, after all. And I didn’t want to
worry my family. Besides, I don’t really understand the feelings of the maiden
in the story yet. I don’t know why she’d want a thing so badly that she’d throw
away everything to get it.”
“Yeah, I guess so. I don’t really understand
it either.”
Misha thought of her mother. She had left her
home, giving up everything she knew to live in an unfamiliar land with her new
husband. Although she had always seemed happy while they lived in the forest
together, after meeting Miranda, Misha was starting to wonder if there might’ve
been a better way for her mother’s happiness. Maybe in a different future,
Misha would have never existed, but at least her mother would have still been
alive.
“Then another part of the Dragon God showed
up, saying, ‘If you want to stay with her so badly, go live with her on land.’
But apparently, it was going to take him some time before he could survive on
land, so he sent me back by myself and promised to come visit when he was
ready.”
Iris’s words dragged Misha back to reality
just as she was about to sink deep into her own thoughts. “Wait, then...”
He said that the Dragon God had gone back to
being a part of him. Can he just split him off again that easily?
Misha recalled the being she knew as the Ruler
of the Sea had created the young man from the legend, something like a puppet,
out of part of himself. He had said after the maiden died, he had reabsorbed
that part of himself, and it was really loud and annoying.
He must have been trying to get rid of that part
of himself again because the Dragon God was so annoying. What a pain.
It sounded rude, but it was
bad enough that the Ruler of the Sea had gone to sleep for a hundred years to
get away. If he had a chance to get rid of that part of himself again, Misha
imagined he’d jump at it. Especially now that he had a direction to push the
Dragon God in. She didn’t know whether he was a god or a spirit or whatever,
but she believed him when he said he could do that.
But that wasn’t really the problem.
“Does that mean the Dragon God is going to
force himself into your life?”
“Probably,” Iris murmured. She finally turned
to look at Misha, her face troubled. “He said we didn’t need to be lovers, that
he just wanted to live alongside me. When I tried to decline, he started crying
again...”
“That’s how he was
trying to convince you?!”
As Misha gaped in shock, Iris turned back to
look over the sea. “I don’t really understand the idea of love all that
well...but I did feel a little happy.”
“So, he got you in the end?”
“Well, I’ve got lots of time to think about
it.”
It was no surprise Iris had been a bit
flustered at suddenly being confronted by a character from a fairy tale. And
even if she was told she was also one of those characters, with no memories of
the events herself, that would hardly feel real.
“Maybe it was all just a dream. Who knows if
it was actually real?” Iris wondered aloud.
I mean, he was still in love after three hundred
years. He sounds super persistent. He’ll definitely show up. His feelings were
so strong, he put the Ruler of the Sea to sleep for that long...
Misha wisely decided to keep the reply that
came to mind to herself. Iris was confused enough as it was. She didn’t need to
throw fuel on the fire.
“So for now, I’ll just keep living my life as
always. My dance teacher is even gonna introduce me to a professional dance
group when I grow up.”
“That’s amazing! You’re going to be a
professional dancer?” The two smiled, recovering from their odd conversation.
“Yes. If you ever see me again, make sure you
say hi!”
“Of course, I’ll definitely come to see you
perform!”
As the morning sun rose to cast its rays upon
them, the two girls swore a promise that day.
“The weather’s so nice.”
Misha reached a hand toward the sky, still
leaning against the railing of the ship.
The gentle sea winds had pulled the ship’s
sails tight. It was her first time at sea, and she’d be there for three days
and two nights. The large ship slid smoothly through the gentle waves. It
seemed like everything would be running on schedule.
“Reincarnation, huh?”
If such a thing was possible, did that mean
she might be able to meet her mother again someday in the far future? Misha
closed her eyes at the thought.
Ah, but even if we met again, there’s no way we’d
know if we had no memories.
Even so, the thought gave Misha a small bit of
comfort.
If at all possible, she hoped she’d be born
again as her mother’s daughter someday. If only...
Misha’s eyes snapped open, taking in the
bright blue sky and deep blue sea. They seemed to stretch on forever, but there
had to be something on the other side. For now, she had her present goals to
keep her occupied.
She stretched her arms overhead, taking a deep
breath of the clean sea air.
◇◇◇
Geord listened to the gentle sound of the
waves on the hull as he enjoyed his nighttime drink. If things went according
to plan, they would arrive back in his home country shortly after noon the next
day. It would then be about three hours by carriage to get back to the castle.
He knew they had been pretty lax in their
journey so far, taking quite a few detours, so he couldn’t delay things any
longer. Rather, he could fully see a certain enraged prime minister coming
right to the docks to bring them back to the castle in person.
Now, how am I gonna smooth things over with Tris?
As Geord downed another mouthful of his drink,
a knock sounded on his door. Expecting some kind of problem, he popped his head
outside to find a brown-haired, brown-eyed Miranda. With her characteristic eye
and hair color hidden, she looked like any average village girl. Well, that
wasn’t quite true. Anyone who looked a little closer could tell she was
definitely on the more attractive side, but for some reason, she still had a
tendency to slip beneath notice. He doubted anyone who happened to pass by her
on the street would even remember encountering her.
“Sorry for disturbing you. We need to talk. Do
you have a minute?”
Though it was hard to tell on the ship, it was
pretty close to midnight. Despite his initial hesitation to invite a young
woman into his room that late, he quickly decided it was fine. The ladies of
high society weren’t around to spread rumors here.
Letting Miranda take the cramped cabin’s
single chair, Geord sat down on the bed. Miranda shot a glance at the
half-empty glass on his table.
“Sorry, just a bit of a nightly ritual for
me,” Geord shrugged, getting a smile out of her.
“What you do in private is your own business.
A bit of alcohol is a great way to relax.”
“Would you like a drink, then?” Sensing
something of a comrade lurking deep within her, Geord offered her a glass, and
she happily accepted it.
Geord’s particular drink of choice was a
strong distilled liquor, something that could be quite an unpleasant experience
to someone who wasn’t good friends with alcohol. Miranda took a quick sniff of
the glass before swallowing a mouthful.
“It smells great. Is this from your country?”
“Yeah. They make this stuff around my
hometown. It’s great with a bit of ice.” The two then fell into something of an
amiable silence, enjoying their drinks.
After getting about halfway through her glass,
Miranda spoke again. “Why exactly are you taking Misha with you?”
The blunt question struck him mid-swallow. He
nearly choked. He had completely relaxed in the quiet, comfortable atmosphere
between them. If Miranda had been calculating when to broach the question, he
had to say he was impressed with her timing.
“Sorry, I don’t know anything. I’m just the
messenger boy here,” he replied curtly before taking another drink. “But my
boss isn’t so dumb that he’d put a noose around his own neck.”
“I see.” Miranda nodded, sensing Geord’s deep
trust in his king. “Well, some of our people did make it into Redford during
the last war. I suppose it should all be fine.” Swirling the remaining fourth
of amber liquid in her glass, Miranda continued to murmur. “That girl is still
so young. And dangerous. I would really prefer to take her back to the
village...”
“I’d appreciate it if you’d at least let the
king see her first,” Geord interjected, only half joking. If Misha were to run
away after all the detours Geord had taken them on, he’d be toast. Tris would
be furious with him.
“Misha seems to trust you. As frustrating as
it is to admit, more than she does me.”
“Ah, yeah. We have been traveling together for
over a month now,” Geord said, taking a drink at Miranda’s sad tone.
“At the very least, it seems you don’t have
any ill intent. No matter, I’ll be keeping an eye on her anyway. Sorry, but the
People of the Forest are watching Redford now. Please remember that.” She
smiled, downing the rest of the liquor. “Thanks for the drink. It was quite
good.”
With an almost feline dexterity, Miranda
slipped out of the room, leaving Geord with nothing but a wink.
Geord watched the door close with a soft
click, only then realizing he was holding his breath. That last wink and smile
had made the forgettable aura surrounding her feel completely fabricated. No
doubt she changed her mannerisms to stand out less just as much as she did her
hair and eyes.
“That’s pretty intense.”
And her last words had been a very thinly
veiled threat. If the Kingdom of Redford made one wrong move, they’d be
enemies. The way she spoke made it clear that she expected him to give her
message word for word to the king. She could hardly have been a few years older
than Geord himself, but she was such a master with words.
“Yeah, that’s a bit too heavy for my
shoulders. It’s all yours, Tris.”
Geord had never considered himself well suited
to negotiating or navigating high society. He was well aware that he was just
some manual laborer who’d been brought up through the ranks. This was exactly
the perfect situation for someone accustomed to more intellectual work, and he
had no hesitation throwing Tris to the wolves on this one.
Imagining Tris’s expression if he ever heard
what Geord had just murmured, the knight swallowed the last of his drink and
placed his empty glass on the table alongside Miranda’s before plopping himself
flat onto the bed. The moment his eyes closed, sleep came knocking.
Eating and sleeping were absolutely essential
to survival, and Geord believed very much in embracing both wholeheartedly when
the time called for it.
No one could say who was the last person to
cross his mind before sleep finally took him.
Miranda returned to the room she shared with
Misha. Despite how cramped space was on a ship like this, their room was
exceptionally spacious. The extravagance they offered Misha really spoke to
Redford’s respect for the girl.
Looking to one of the two beds lined up in the
room, Miranda saw Misha fast asleep, a ball of white fur tucked snugly in her
arms. Resisting the temptation to reach out and stroke the girl’s hair, she
quietly retired to her own bed.
The drink she’d enjoyed with Geord had
affected her much quicker than she expected, leaving her quite drowsy already.
She wasted no effort resisting it, thinking back on the last time she had seen
Leyas as she lay down.
I’ll take your place with Misha for a little bit.
I promise I won’t let anything bad happen to her, she whispered to the shadow in her memories
as she let go of consciousness.
Side Story: The Little Wolf’s Feelings
My name is Ren. My favorite person in the
world, Misha, gave me that name.
I am a full-blooded gray wolf. It’s kind of
strange that my fur is so white, but my mother and my siblings are all gray
wolves, so there’s no doubt I’m one too.
But the others in my pack didn’t like the
color of my fur. They teased me a lot. One time while they were chasing me
around, I ended up falling in a hole, where they abandoned me.
My mom tried really hard to save me, by the
way! But in the end, she couldn’t get me out, so the pack took her and left. My
leg was hurt and I was so lonely, I cried out for help. Misha is the one who
saved me.
At first I was scared. Everyone always said,
“Humans are bad.” They’d told me, “If humans catch you, they’ll turn you into a
rug,” so when she reached out toward me, I instinctively growled at her.
She just smiled and told me not to be scared.
When I saw her bright green eyes, the same color as the forest, my fear melted
away. I understood she wasn’t a scary person. Then she fixed my leg and shared
her meat with me.
I ended up joining her pack. There were tons
of humans around, so I worried about when they’d turn me into a rug, but I soon
came to love Misha, and so I did my best to stay by her side. The pack was all
adults. Misha and I were the only kids, so we always stuck together.
The pack leader was a male with red hair who
looked really strong. He always took good care of Misha, and he even shared his
meat with me a bunch of times, so I knew he was a good guy. He was probably my
second favorite in the pack—after Misha, of course. But every once in a while,
he very rudely pulled on my tail. Maybe he was a bad guy after all.
One day while I was sleeping, a really sad
voice woke me up. When I realized it was Misha, I looked over to see that she
was crying in her sleep. She was calling for someone. I could tell, because I
had done the same thing when I was stuck in that hole.
Did her mother leave her behind too? Misha was
so smart and such a good girl, so I couldn’t imagine why anyone would abandon
her. And humans have all kinds of different hair. I didn’t think her mother
would have left her just because she was the wrong color.
I licked at her face a bit, and it tasted
really salty. Her voice was so sad as she called for that person that it
started to make me sad too. I crawled into her arms, sticking close to her. No
matter how sad we were during the day, my brothers and sisters had always
calmed down when we did this. I hoped it would help Misha too.
See, my fur is really warm, isn’t it? And you’re
always brushing it for me, so it’s really white and fluffy now, right?
I used to hate my fur for being the wrong
color, but Misha was always saying how cute it was, and she spent lots of time
brushing it. Maybe my fur wasn’t so bad after all.
Hey Misha, stop crying. I’m still small, so I
can’t protect you like that red-haired guy, but I’ll grow up really fast. And
us gray wolves are super strong. I mean it!
After that, Misha finally stopped crying. Her
face was still covered in tears, so after licking it clean for her, I closed my
eyes.
When morning came, she had completely
forgotten her tears. She was super surprised to see me in her arms. But I felt
it was better she didn’t remember something so sad. That’s why when she asked
me if I was the one who’d been lonely, I let her
believe what she wanted. But then the red-haired male made fun of me for still
acting like a baby! I made sure to give him a good snarl for that.
I may be small, but I’m no baby! This means war!
Soon after, when Misha wasn’t around, he
apologized to me with “Thank you for staying with Misha,” so I accepted his
offer for peace. It definitely was not because he
shared some jerky with me! I was just trying to help out—if he had some to
spare, I was always happy to take it off his hands.
Whenever she was crying in her sleep, all the
grown-ups outside became nervous. It looked like they didn’t know how to make
her feel better. Well, as strong as that red-haired male was, he didn’t have
the soft and fluffy fur that I did, so I guess there was just nothing he could
do.
I’d be at Misha’s side whenever she felt
lonely, whether I was asked to or not. After all, we were family now.
After a while, we came across a huge lake.
They called it the “ocean,” and when I tried to drink some of it, I was
surprised to find it was really salty, just like Misha had said. My feet sank
into the sand when I tried to run, and the waves came and attacked me if I
stayed still. If I let my guard down for an instant, I’d be soaked through and
through.
I dodged most of the attacks quite gracefully,
but I also failed a couple times. Before I knew it, I was soaking wet and
covered in sand. Misha laughed when she saw me, and then she gave me a bath.
But with all the excitement, my leg started to hurt again. Just after it was
feeling better too.
After that, I spent most of my time in the
inn. Misha brought me toys to play with, like balls and these strange dolls
that made noise when I bit them, but with her and the red-haired male always
going out, I was pretty bored.
At some point, Misha brought back a strange
rock that glowed in the middle of the night. I thought it was annoying, so I
always knocked it off the table and hid it under the bed, but it would always
end up back on the table. In the end, I just tried to avoid looking at it.
Eventually, it disappeared altogether.
And then Misha told me about what happened
while she was out. Apparently that stone had been glowing with the color of the
ocean. I came from the forest, so I didn’t know much about the ocean place.
Yeah, of course I hadn’t sensed anything from it. If it had been something from
the forest I would have realized it right away. I’m serious!
That’s how I knew Misha wasn’t scary—because
she was from the forest too.
Today I boarded a ship for the first time.
Carriages run on the land, but ships run on the water. Did you know that?
I knew carriages were pulled by horses, but
what pulled ships? When I looked around outside, I didn’t see anything attached
to the ship, so maybe it was something in the water?
“Careful, you’re gonna fall.”
I tried to look and see what was in the water,
but Misha grabbed me and picked me up.
Come on, I’m not that stupid.
I liked it when she held me, so I wasn’t going
to complain, but still.
“Misha, we’re boarding now.”
“Okay!”
Miranda waved at us from the ship, and Misha
started running toward her, still holding me in her arms. Being jostled around
while she was running felt really strange! Putting my paws on her shoulder and
trying to stabilize myself, I looked one more time into the water.
I saw a huge shadow passing underneath the
surface. I didn’t know why, but it reminded me of that rock. Misha didn’t
notice it...but it didn’t seem like an enemy, so I guessed it was fine.
Us gray wolves can sense danger with our
noses. My mom always said, “Trust your instincts.”
My instincts had never been wrong so far!
Things would definitely be okay.
Misha ran aboard the ship. From the deck, we
could see the ocean stretching out really, really far.
I wasn’t able to help much this time because
my leg was hurt, but I had rested properly in the inn, so now I was okay. I
would definitely be joining Misha on her next adventure.
She was going to see the king of another
country. A king was the most important person in the whole country. Misha had
to be pretty incredible herself to be meeting with a guy like that!
Geord—that was the red-haired male’s
name—looked at some paper and laughed, saying something about a request from a
priest for his health and that it was funny how they wanted to test something
out, but I didn’t really know what he meant. Miranda frowned too, saying she
had a bad feeling. I wondered if she had intuition like us gray wolves.
The ship gave a loud cry and then started
moving slowly.
“See you again!” Misha reached out over the
railing of the ship and waved.
I heard she had made some friends. She was
leaning so far over the rail I was afraid she was going to fall in the water,
so I grabbed hold of the hem of her skirt just in case.
“Looks like the tables have turned,” Miranda
said with a chuckle, but Misha was too busy waving to her friends to notice.
Misha liked the kids in town a lot, but now
they were saying goodbye. I, however, would stay with her. We were family,
after all.
Sure, my fur was white instead of gray, and
Misha’s eyes were the same color as the forest, but that didn’t matter. We
would always be together.
And once I got bigger, it would be my turn to
protect her!
Afterword
Hello, nice to meet you! Thank you for picking
up The Tiny Witch from the Deep Woods. I am the
author, Yanagi. I was quietly living alone in my little corner of the web novel
world when a kind fairy came along and brought me, unworthy as I was, all the
way here.
This is a story that came from a dream I once
had of a young girl running through the forest. She looked so happy and
carefree that it left quite an impression on me even after I woke up. I started
to wonder about what kind of girl she was. Before long, a vivid, striking
picture of her had come to life.
And thanks to one offer I received, the story
of Misha that had only existed in my head has now emerged as a novel, both her
and her friends brought to life through wonderful illustrations. Honestly
speaking, it was quite a struggle to undergo all the necessary revisions
alongside my usual job, and I complained about it more than once.
But! The moment I saw the first rough sketches
of Misha and the other characters, I was through the roof! I didn’t care how
worthy I was or wasn’t anymore. I was just so glad that my work had struck a
chord! Those images were absolutely bursting with a cuteness that my clumsy
efforts at writing could never express. Thank you so much for your amazing
illustrations, Mr. Hihara. (Prostrate bow)
With all that excitement, I added quite a bit
to the sections that weren’t finished yet. Since the web novel version hasn’t
been changed at all, it may be fun to go back and compare the two. By the way,
I got so carried away that I ended up adding an extra thirty thousand
characters of text compared to the original manuscript. I have fond memories of
how much my editor panicked when they saw it (ha ha).
Finally, I’d like to express my sincerest
thanks to my editor, who kindly and gently guided me through the whole process
despite my inexperience, and for my family, who kept my tofu-headed self in
check through all my whining about how the work was never ending.
And of course, to all of you readers who made
it this far. Thank you for joining Misha on this journey.
I hope we can meet again soon.
Yanagi









